You are on page 1of 182

The Khanqah Chishti Nizami Habibi Soofie

International Sufi Order


Pietermaritzburg
South Africa

The Inside of the Mazaar Shareef of Khwaja Ghulam


Muhammad Soofie Saheb
Hazrath Soofie Sahib (ra)
Photograph by my daughter Rif'at Soofi
Truth is handed over from person to person; its not taken from
books. Every book studied with a true scholar, is a book passed
down a chain of transmission or he was given permission to study
and teach it, since the scholars recognized his ability to read
independently. The light of truth is passed down from heart to heart.
Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) says in the Holy Quraan (16:43)

Ask the people of zikr (who know reality in a world of illusion) when
you dont know
Its an obligation to consult people of knowledge. Even the Holy
Prophet Muhammad (Peace be upon him, his family and companions)
was taught by Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) .You cannot take
knowledge that has any import or weight in this world; whether
medicine or engineering from books, you have to study under qualified
teachers.
The 'pledge of commitment' (bay'ah) is given Allah (Almighty and
Glorious is He) with the strong resolve that this is the hand of my
teacher who will spiritually prune me on this path. After one is
initiated as a mureed (disciple), literally meaning 'the intent' the
Murshid (spiritual guide) hands over a copy of the Shajrah (lineage
of the Grand Masters) to the mureed. Hidaya or guidance from Allah
(Almighty and Glorious is He) flows, according to the Sufi way, from
Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) to His beloved Holy Prophet
Muhammad (Peace be upon him, his family and companions) and
then through him to the chain (silsila) of spiritual luminaries.
All divine blessings come to the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Peace be
upon him, his family and companions) as mentioned in hadith:

All blessings are given to me and I distribute


Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) has created the personality of
the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Peace be upon him, his family and
companions) as the first transformer, and only personality capable of
receiving directly from Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) and he
distributes it to those who received knowledge from him and who
had their personalities shaped by him. They are spiritually superior
and in every way elevated being on an attained level of perfection.
The next transformer after the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Peace be
upon him, his family and companions) is Hazrath Abu Bakr; then
Hazrath Umar; then Hazrath Uthman and then Hazrath Ali (may
Allah be well pleased with them all). In our Shajrah we mention
Hazrath Ali (may Allah be well pleased with him) because he was

especially chosen to transmit this spiritual knowledge. We enter an


order for the sake of spiritual knowledge and practice to acquire
holiness to refine our thought, body, soul and entire being.
The wisdom behind reading the Shajrah for the mureed in a specific
silsila, is that he remains in touch with this chain or channel which
has been formed by Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) for him.
When we read the shajrah we establish our connection with the Holy
Prophet Muhammad (Peace be upon him, his family and
companions) through that chain. This is a special channel to obtain
special favors of Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He). As the angels
are appointed functionaries to perform specific tasks the Aulia are
functionaries to assist man on the spiritual quest. The recitation of
the shajrah is to stay in touch with the link of the spiritual chain and
the spiritual masters who make up the spiritual chain. The link is
kept fresh and "rust free"; by virtue of the mureeds daily recitation
of the Shajrah. By reciting the Shajrah, one repeatedly renews one's
pledge with the Masters of the Order; and this contact brings great
results in this world and in the hereafter.
Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) says in Holy Qur'aan the 17th
Sura, Bani Israel verse 71:

"One day we shall call together all human beings with their
respective Imams/Leaders".
The explanation of this verse is that each follower will be asked to
be behind his leader/guide that he followed in this world. This verse
is indicative of the fact that the mureed will be called upon on the
Day of Qiyaamah to be behind his Shaykh, and under the flag of the
spiritual order that he belongs to.
It is of utmost importance that the mureed recites the Shajrah with
understanding, sincerity and feeling. This will stir his soul; which is
invaluable in the spiritual progress of the mureed. The attention of
the Shuyukh (plural of "Shaykh") is also drawn to the person and
they respond spiritually, with great affinity - both in this life and
after death.
Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) says in the Holy Quraan in the
52nd Sura, at-Tur (Mount Sinai) in verse 21:

And those who believe and whose families follow them in


Faith,To them shall We join their families: Nor shall We deprive them (of the fruit) of
aught of their works
The Shajrah expresses certain feelings with the specific intention of
"Wasila" present; but at the same time, it should be kept in mind
that everything invariably is from the blessing of Allah (Almighty and
Glorious is He).
The Shajrah is usually recited after Salaatul Fajr or after Salaatul
Esha. The time for reading should be kept constant. The wazaaif
prescribed by the Shaykh to a mureed should be consistently
recited, for this serves as a "polish" for the heart.
The Hadith states:
Mercy of Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) descends where
the pious are remembered
If mercy descends where they are remembered how much more
mercy must descend where they are resident. Hazrath Maulana
Jalaluddin Rumi (May Allah be well pleased with him)
"When anyone talks or remembers the pious servants of
Allah, Allah's mercy descends upon them like gracious rain
and refreshes the mind."




A (spiritually) beneficial tree, whose root is firm and whose branches are in heaven
[Holy Quraan, 14th Sura, Ibrahim, verse 24]


The Shajrah
of the
Chishtia, Nizaamia, Sulaimania, Hafizia, Habibia, Sufia

Name
The Refulgent Sun of Piety, Truth, Justice,
Love,

Date
12 Rabi al-Awwal

Buried Place
Madinah, Arabia

21 Ramadaan
4 Muharram
27 Safar
3 Rabi al-Awwal

Najaf, Iraq
Basra, Iraq
Basra, Iraq
Makkah, Arabia

26 Jamad al-Awwal
4th Shawwal
7th Shawwal
14th Muharram
14th Rabi us-Saani
1st Jamad-us-Saani

Syria
Syria
Basra, Iraq
Baghdad, Iraq
Acer, border of Syria
Chisht

Selflessness, Wisdom and Beauty, who came


as the Last
Prophet and Messenger of Allah to entire
Humanity

2
3
4
5
6
7
8
9
10
11

The Holy Prophet Muhammad e


Hazrath Ali son of Abu Taalib
Khwaja Hasan of Basra
Khwaja Abdul Wahid son of Zaid
Khwaja Fuzail son of Ayaaz
Khwaja Ibrahim son of Adham
Khwaja Sadid ad-aDin Hudhaifa al- Marashi
Khwaja Amin ad-Din Hubayra
Khwaja Mumshad Uluw al- Dinawari
Khwaja Abu Ishaq al- Chishti
Khwaja Abu Ahmad Abdaal

12
13
14
15
16
17

Khwaja Abu Muhammad


Khwaja Nasir ad-Din Abu Yusuf
Khwaja Qutb ad-Din Maudud
Khwaja Haji Sharif Zandani
Khwaja Uthman Haruni
Hazrath Sultan al-Hind, Gharib Nawaaz

4th Rabi al-Awwal


13th Rajab
1st Rajab
3rd Rajab
th
5 Shawwal

Chisht
Chisht
Chisht
Syria
Madinah, Arabia

6th Rajab

Ajmer Sharif, India

Delhi, India
Paak, Pattan, Pakistan
Delhi, India
Delhi, India
Delhi, India
Mubarak Patan, Gujarat
Pir Pattan, Gujarat
Pir Pattan, Gujarat
Ahmadabad, Gujarat
Ahmadabad, Gujarat
Bank of River Jamman,
Akbarabad
Madinah, Arabia
Delhi, India
Aurangabad, India
Delhi, India
Taaj Sarwar in Chishtia
near Mahar Shareef,
Pakistan
Taunsa, Pakistan
Khairabaad, India
Hyderabad, India
Riverside, Durban
Ajmer, India

Khwaja Muin ad-Din Hassan

18
19
20
21
22
23
24
25
26
27
28

al-Chishti
Khwaja Qutb ad-Din Kaki
Baba Farid ad-Din Masood Ganj-e-Shakar
Khwaja Nizaam ad-Din Aulia
Khwaja Nasir ad-Din Chiragh
Khwaja Kamaal ad-Din Allama
Khwaja Siraaj ad-Din Chishti
Khwaja Muhammad Ilm ad-Din
Khwaja Mahmud Urf Rajan
Khwaja Jamaal-ud-Din Juman
Khwaja Hasan Muhammad
Khwaja Shams ad-Din Muhammad

29
30
31
32
33

Khwaja Muhyi ad-Din Yahya Madni


Khwaja Kalimullah of Jahanabad
Khwaja Nizaam ad-Din of Aurangabad
Khwaja Maulana Fakhr ad-Din of Delhi
Khwaja Nur Muhammad of Mahar

14th Rabi-al-Awwal
5th Muharram
18th Rabi as-Saani
18th Ramadaan
27th Dhul Qadah
st
21 Jamaad al-Awwal
26th Safar
12th Safar
20th Zil Hajj
28th Zil Qadh
19th or 29th
Rabi al-Awwal
28th Safar
th
24 Rabi al-Awwal
12th Zil Qadh
th
27 Jamad as-Saani
3rd Zil Hajj

34
35
36
37
38

Khwaja Sulaiman of Taunsa


Khwaja Hafiz Muhammad Ali of Khairabaad
Khwaja Habib Ali Shah of Hyderabad
Khwaja Ghulam Muhammad Soofie Saheb
Khwaja Muhammad Ibrahim Soofie Saheb

7th Safar
19th Zil Qadh
6 Zil Hajj
2nd Rajab 1911
18th Ramadaan 1955

History
In the year 1895, Khwaja Habib Ali Shah (Rahmatullah alai),
the great Sufi saint of the Chishti Nizami Order in India, sent
his beloved disciple and spiritual successor, Shah Ghulam
Muhammad Siddique (Rahmatullah alai), the humble
descendant of Hazrath Abu Bakr Siddiq (Rahmatullah alai), to
the Southern tip of Africa to propagate Islam in general and
the Chishti Order in particular. It was a challenge to push

forward the work of Islam and the silsilah in the British ruled
country and to evolve an effective mechanism to deal with
those associated with the order. Hazrath Soofie Saheb
(Rahmatullah alai) not only rose to the occasion but in the
short span of fifteen years the entire Southern Africa became
studded with Khanqah's of the Chishti order. The Khanqah of
the founding Pir of the Nizami Chishti order, Khwaja Nizaam
ad -din Awliya (Rahmatullah alai), by the side of the Jamuna
river in India, whilst the first Khanqah of his beloved spiritual
son stood by the side of the Umgeni river in Africa, with a
magnificent view of the Indian ocean.
The subsequent eleven Khanqah's established all stood in a
serene, loving atmosphere, with a cool and refreshing breeze
blowing, which aptly symbolized the order of Khwaja Muin ud
din Chishti (Rahmatullah alai), the order of love, of the prince
of love, which was to blow amidst the oppression and
injustice. The Khanqah's comprised of a Masjid, Madrassah,
cemetery, orphanage, rehabilitation center, medical center,
houses, courtyard, garden, fountains, wells and open kitchen.
In each center, the yellow and red flag of the Chishti Nizami
Habibi order was hoisted. The sandy yellow color on the flag
symbolized humility whilst the red color symbolized ishqe
haqiqi (true love), the two qualities which the Habibia order
strives to imbibe into it's disciples. The flag also indicated
that a Khalifa of the order was present at the Khanqah and
could be consulted.
I feel it is important to mention here that Mahatma Gandhi
used to visit Hazrath for spiritual counseling whilst Hazrath
received legal counseling from him. The trust deed of Soofie
Saheb (Rahmatullah alai) bears the signature of his lawyer,
Mahatma Gandhi, and this bears testimony to the fact. The
various practices of the Chishti were introduced into each
center; in order to mobilize the spirit in the quest for God.
The Habibia Soofie Khanqah in Pietermaritzburg (est.1909),
was built on the banks of the Dorpspruit river, at that time an
uninhabited area, where Soofie Saheb (Rahmatullah alai) had
predicted the people would eventually live, was administered
and controlled by the third son, Hazrath Haji Shah Abd al
-Qadir Soofie (Rahmatullah alai). He continued in the
footsteps of his father and became a father figure to the
community who affectionately called him "Haji Saheb".. He
passed away on the 28 May 1940, and his young widow,

Sayyida Khatoon Bibi Soofie (Rahmatullah alai), continued


the spiritual practices and selfless service to humanity of the
Chisti Habibia silsila. Bhabi Saheba (Rahmatullah alai) passed
away on the 14 January 1991. The Khanqah is ably served
today by her son, , Hazrath Shah Ghulam Muhammad and her
grandson Irshad, the son of of Hazrath Shah Ghulam Muhay
ad-Din the son of Hazrath Shah Ghulam Muhay ad din WHO
PASSED AWAY ON 18th Rabi al-Awwal 1429 (March 2008). It
is an accepted fact today that the Habibia Soofie Aastana in
Pietermaritzburg which comprises of a Jaame Masjid,
Madrasah, pre-school, Islamic library, community hall and
offering social welfare services, spiritual healing, counseling
and spiritual guidance, is a thriving Khanqah of the Chishti
Nizami Habibi order.
In conclusion, I pay tribute to all the present Khulafa,
trustees and khadims (servants), of all the Soofie Saheb
(Rahmatullah alai) Khanqah's in Southern Africa. Every
centre established by Hazrath (Rahmatullah alai) is
continuously, selflessly serving humanity and even
adversaries admit that the impressive buildings and well
maintained Khanqah's have become a landmark and a tribute
to Islamic architecture in Southern Africa. The services of
Hazrat Soofie Saheb (Rahmatullah alai) i.e. loving and
serving all humanity regardless of caste, creed, nations, race
or sex continue at his Khanqah's unto the present day. His
Mazaar Shareef at Riverside, Durban at the headquarters of
The Spiritual Order, is a fountain of the nectar of love, that
nourishes hearts up to the present day.

ARTICLES & LECTURES

Hypocrites
Qur'aan

The Holy Qur'aan warns against Hypocrites in Sura 63 Munafiqoon Verse 4

When you see them, their exteriors (outer trappings)


please you; and when they speak, you listen to their
words. They are as (worthless as hollow) pieces of
timber propped up, (unable to stand on their own).
They think that every cry is against them. They are the
enemies; so beware of them. The curse of Allah be on
them! How are they deluded (away from the Truth)!
Commentary : Dont be fooled by every Kurta and
Turban.
Hadith
It is reported in Mishkat from Hazrat Abu Said Khudri (Radiallhu Anhu)
who narrates that: "Once we were in the presence and company of the
Holy Prophet (sallallahu alai hi wa sallam). He was distributing the
booty (Spoils of War) when a person named Zul-Khawaisara, who was
from the tribe of Bani Tamim addressed the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alai
hi wa sallam) "Oh Muhammad Be Just!" ". The Prophet (Sallal Laahu
Alaihi Wasallam) replied: "A Great pity that you have doubts, if I
am unjust then who will be just, you are a loser and a failure."
Zul-Khawaisara's attitude infuriated Hazrat Umar (Radiallhu Anhu) and
he pleaded with the Prophet (sallallahu alai hi wa sallam)to permit him
to slay Zul-Khawaisara. The Prophet (sallallahu alai hi wa sallam)
remarked: "Leave him, as his slaying will serve no good purpose, as he
is not the only individual but there are a host of others like him and if
you compare their prayers and fasting to that of yours, you
yourself will feel ashamed. These are the people who will recite the
Quran but it will not go beyond their throats, with all these
apparent virtues they will leave the fold of Deen just like the arrow
leaves the bow.

Miskhat Shareef, pp/535 / Alim-CD-Rom Bukhari Shareef 9:527 &


8:184

Sufi Wisdom
Imam Malik says
Whoever has the outer Law (shariah) without the inner Reality (Sufism) has left the right
way;
Whoever has the inner Reality (Sufism) without the outer Law (shariah) has strayed;
Whoever joins the two of them has realization.

The Holy Qur'aan warns against Hypocrites in Sura 63 Munafiqun Verse 4

When you look at them, their exteriors please thee; and


when they speak, you listen to their words.(If Allah blesses
you with truth) They are as (worthless as hollow) pieces of

timber propped up, (unable to stand on their own). They


think that every cry is against them. They are the enemies;
so beware of them. The curse of Allah be on them! How are
they deluded (away from the Truth)!
COMMENTARY: Don't let dress fool you. Con men dress the part.
The Qur'aan identifies them:
in Sura al-Baqara 2: Verse 8 to 21

Of the people there are some who say: "We believe in Allah and the
Last Day;" but they do not (really) believe.

Fain would they deceive Allah and those who believe, but they only
deceive themselves, and realize (it) not!

In their hearts is a disease; and Allah has increased their disease: and
grievous is the penalty they (incur), because they are false (to
themselves).

When it is said to them: "Make not mischief on the earth," they say:
"Why, we only want to make peace!"

Of a surety, they are the ones who make mischief, but they realize (it)
not.

When it is said to them: "Believe as the others believe," they say:


"Shall we believe as the fools believe?" Nay, of a surety they are the
fools, but they do not know.

When they meet those who believe, they say: "We believe;" but when
they are alone with their evil ones, they say: "We are really with you we
(were) only jesting."

Allah will throw back their mockery on them, and give them rope in
their trespasses; so they will wander like blind ones (to and fro).

These are they who have bartered guidance for error: but their traffic is
profitless, and they have lost true direction.

Their similitude is that of a man who kindled a fire; when it lighted all
around him, Allah took away their light and left them in utter darkness.
So they could not see.

Deaf, dumb, and blind, they will not return (to the path).

Or (another similitude) is that of a rain-laden cloud from the sky: in it


are zones of darkness, and thunder and lightning: they press their
fingers in their ears to keep out the stunning thunderclap, the while
they are in terror of death. But Allah is ever round the rejecters of
Faith!

The lightning all but snatches away their sight; every time the light
(helps) them, they walk therein, and when the darkness grows on
them, they stand still, and if Allah willed, He could take away their
faculty of hearing and seeing; for Allah hath power over all things.

O ye people! Adore your Guardian Lord, Who created you and those
who came before you, that ye may have the chance to learn
righteousness;
COMMENTARY:
Having announced at the beginning of this Sura that the Holy Quraan
is without doubt the Book and the guidance, Allah proceeds to
categorize men into three main types of attitude to faith.
(I)
The believers, whose attributes are discussed in the first five
verses of the Sura
(II)

The disbelievers, whose qualities are discussed in the sixth


and seventh verses.

(III)

The Hypocrites, whose qualities, or signs, are discussed in


detail from verses eight to twenty one, FOR THEY ARE MOST
DANGEROUS AND THE ENEMY WITHIN OUR RANKS
Because the Holy Quraan is the Book that is sent down to help
mankind to the Straight Way, its subject matter is man, and his beliefs,
whether correct or incorrect. An explanation is given of the
consequences of the belief that man chooses and adopts within
himself.
In reading the Quraan, one must keep in mind the fact that the
Speaker is always the Almighty Himself. Sometimes He lets His
creation speak also, and sometimes He punctuates the text with
goodly examples for our reflection.

Love the Source of Grace


Allah Y asks His Belovede to tell us, in the Holy Qur'aan in the 3rd Sura, al-i-Imraan:
Verse31:

Tell them My Belovede! If you do love AllahY, imitate me (love me


and build up your moral and spiritual life on my imitation): AllahY will
love you and forgive your sins: For Allah Y, is Most Forgiving, Most
Merciful.
Some Muslims hesitate to declare the Holy Prophet Muhammad e as the greatest of all
the Prophets because the Holy Quraan says in the 2nd Sura, al-Baqara in verse 285:

(The believers) make no distinction between any of His messengers.


But the Holy Quraan says in the 2nd Sura, al-Baqara in verse 253:

Some of these messengers have We favoured more than others...


If we do not concentrate on the first verse in disregard of the other, then it becomes clear
that the Holy Quraan is making a distinction between the nature of the prophets and their
stature. The first verse is telling us that in their function as Messenger there is no
distinction between the various prophets and our Holy Prophet Muhammad e for they
were all sent by the same true God, they were all serving one and the same plan of God
and they were all human beings and part of a single brotherhood of righteous servants of
God. The second verse is telling us that in stature or rank some prophets were superior to
others.

Let the Muslims therefore have not the slightest hesitation in declaring the Prophet
Muhammad to be the greatest of all prophets and thus the noblest of men and the crown
and pride of the whole of God's creation.

Some Muslims try to diminish love and admiration for the Holy Prophet Muhammad e in
other Muslims and in themselves on the basis that too much" expression of love and
admiration for the Holy Prophet Muhammad e can lead to his deification and therefore to
shirk.

One is attached to the moon by the moonlight and to the sun by the sunbeams. The
moonlight cannot be separated from the moon and neither can the sunbeams be separated
from the sun. What are Muslims being taught? They have lost the source of blessing and
they feel that they can be blessed by Allah Y. The source of grace as established by Allah
Y is only the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. Association with the Holy Prophet Muhammad
e is association with Allah Y. The closer your bond with him the closer you are to Allah
Y. When Allah Y wanted Hazrath Umar for Islam he took him to the Court of the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e . One look of grace changed his aggressive stance into one of
Faith (imaan) and extreme love for Rasulullah e. He approached the Beloved of Allah e
with the intent to kill (khooni) but the Holy Prophet e opened the gates of blessing
presented him to Allah Y as his companion (Sahaabi).

The Holy Prophet e is asked by AllahY to proclaim, if you want to bring the love of
AllahY close to you then get close to me. In effect, Allah Y is asking His Beloved to
proclaim that I am the source of loving Allah Y and being loved by Allah Y. Let me
present an example for your understanding. E.g. stand in front of a mirror, look at your
reflection and then call your reflection. It should obey your order for it is your reflection.
Try to entice it, threaten it or shout at it to come to you. All these methods will not work.
The only method to get close to the reflection is to approach the mirror and get close to it.
You take one step and you will find the reflection taking a step. You walk slowly it will
walk slowly. You go running it will come running. If one embraces the mirror the
reflection will embrace one. If you cannot call your own reflection then how will you
summon AllahY? So, it was difficult to attain AllahsY love. AllahY is generous (karam)
to us he kept The Mirror That Reflects AllahY (aina-e-haqnuma) beneath the Green
Dome of Madinah, the Illuminated. If you want to see The Radiations of AllahY
(tajalliat)1[1] then this is The Mirror (aina-e-haqnuma). As you approach this mirror
the love of AllahY will approach you. You take one step and you will find the Love of
AllahY taking a step towards you. You walk slowly the love of AllahY will walk slowly
towards you. You go running it will come running to you. If you stand in the shade of the
1[1] Tajalli;: Self-disclosure. Tajalli means Allah's unveiling of Himself to His creatures. The Divine Selfdisclosures are never repeated and they are never ending. They are the lights of the Unseen that are
unveiled to hearts. They are the signs that Allah has placed within us in order that He may be seen. Each
tajalli pours more light, and still more light upon whomsoever it falls, for Eternity. The mountain of the
nafs is blown to pieces in the tajalli of Allah. The differences that occur within the various Sufi Orders
(turuuq) do not indicate disagreement or argument amongst the Masters. Each human is unique, and each
tajalli is utterly unique, therefore no two people ever experience the same tajalli. But, those who have
tasted know, and those who have not tasted do not know. Tajalli is beyond words. Tajalli is bewilderment
(hayrah).

Green Dome of Madinah then know that you have come into the embrace of the love of
AllahY. So the Person Of The Holy Prophete (zaat e Mustafa) has been made the Main
Center (markaz) and every aspirant who desires AllahsY love is being asked to journey
towards him, keep his eye on him and the beauty is that following (itteba) is impossible if
one does not keep ones gaze fixed on the Holy Prophet e. The Holy Prophet e has been
made the Main Center (markaz) of interaction with Allah Y.

AllahY loves us and orders us to love the Holy Prophet Muhammad e and AllahY above
all else. So, love for the Holy Prophet e is in reality, love for AllahY.
Therefore the Holy Prophet e has stated:
Man ahabbani faqad Ahaballah
He who loves me has loved AllahY
Love for the Holy Prophet e is in reality, love for AllahY. Obedience to the Holy Prophet
e is in reality obedience to AllahY. Allegiance to the Holy Prophet e is in reality,
allegiance to AllahY. The calling of the Holy Prophet e is the calling of AllahY. The
remembrance of the Holy Prophet e is in actuality the remembrance of AllahY. To see the
Holy Prophet e is to see AllahY.

Become Possessors Of Love (ahle ishq), as long as you dont possess love for the Holy
Prophet e you possess naught.

Ishq jis dil meh nahi woh dil nahi


Areh yaar keh rehneh ki woh manzil nahi
That which does not contain love is in reality not a heart
It is not worthy of being the Abode Of The Beloved
Listen to a hadith of the Holy Prophet e:

La yuminu ahadukum hat taa akuna ahabba ilayhim min walideyhi wa waladehi
wan naasi ajmaiin
None of you can be a possessor of true faith (mumin) unless I become dearer to him
than his parents, his offspring and in fact all human beings
In a similar Hadith that is not in the collection of Bukhari, but in other collections
wherein the word wa nafsihi is included gives the added meaning that:
None of you can be a possessor of true faith (mumin) unless I become dearer to him
than his parents, his offspring, all human beings and your own life.
In the light of these Quraanic verses and Ahadith a poet Hafeez Jalanderi has presented
these two verses of poetry:
Muhammad ki muhabbat din-e-haqq ki shart-e-awwal heh
Issi meh hoh agar khaami toh sub kuch na muqammal heh
The love for the Holy Prophet Muhammade is the first condition in the religion of truth
If this love is tainted then everything else is worthless
The prayers (salaah), fasting and apparent virtuous deeds are all worthless if one does not
possess perfect love for the Holy Prophet e in ones heart. Ponder! The Holy Prophet e
instructs mankind to love him, whether they are kings, ministers, judges, doctors, lawyers
or laymen or else they dont fulfill the condition of attaining true belief. In a sense he is
saying that in this universe, he is the unique creation that possesses all the different styles
and types of beauty (husn-o-jamaal). No other has this unique status. The Holy Prophet e
is externally and internally beautiful. He has every aspect of beauty in excess. Those that
dont love him, from their actions concede that they love no aspect of beauty and have no
taste or awe (zauq)

No other followers of the Holy Prophet e can reach the status of His Companions
(Sahaaba). How did they achieve this excellence in status that no non-companion can
surpass? If one answers that due to their knowledge (ilm) then I can name great scholars
(ulama) that surpassed the Sahaaba in intellectual pursuit, e.g. Imam e Aazam (Imam Abu
Hanifa t), Imam Shafei t, Imam Maalik t. If one says that the Sahaaba attained their
status due to Religious Striving (riyaazat o mujaheda) then I can name great nonSahaaba that surpassed the Sahaaba in Religious Striving (riyaazat o mujaheda). E.g.
research how Ghaws al-Azam (Shaykh Abd Al-Qaadir Jilaani t) and Khwaja Muinuddin
Chishti t strove in the path of Allah Y Y. So, how did they achieve this excellence in
status that no non-companion can surpass? The answer is that they were close to the Holy
Prophete and entertained excessive love for him in their hearts. The ones that are close
possess a unique status. To further clarify what I am saying I present an example. Light a

candle here and you stand there against the wall and notice your shadow, thrown due to
the light of the candle, will be equal your body size. Slowly walk towards the candle and
you will see your shadow grow, as you get closer to the light. If you step away from the
light your shadow will get smaller. If you come very close then the entire room will have
your shadow. So the Sahaaba were blessed to have physical connection (nisbah) with the
Holy Prophet Muhammad e means of contact with Allah Y. Therefore Allah Y says,
If you do love AllahY, follow. Imitate and love My Belovede , then AllahY, will love
you.

'A Jewish boy would serve the Holy Prophet Muhammad e , according to commentators
of this hadith2[2] he used to keep wudhu water for the Holy Prophet e and carryhis
blessed shoes. The boy fell sick, so the Holy Prophet Muhammad e noticing his absence
summoned the Sahaaba and they went to visit him. They found his father sitting by his
head, and the Messenger of Allah e said to him: 'proclaim that there is no true god
worthy of being worshipped except Allah Y alone' and I will intercede on your behalf on
account of it on the Day of Resurrection.' The boy looked at his father, and the father
said: 'Obey Abul-Qasim!' so the boy uttered: 'There is no true god worthy of being
worshipped except Allah Y alone, and Muhammad is the last Messenger.' The
Messenger of Allah e said: All praise is due to Allah, Who saved him from the Fire of
Hell.' I say that the barakah of the Holy Prophet Muhammad es blessed sandal (nalain
Shareef) that was held close to his heart many times had prepared his heart to embrace
the faith. The greatest amongst the Friends of Allah t (aulia) and Imaams (aimma)
cannot come near the status of this boy, this young sahaaba.

So the conclusion is if you are lovers of AllahY then make itteba of the Holy Prophet e.
Let me tell you about the incident of two saintly persons in passing. The Holy Qur'aan
command obedience of the Holy Prophet e but these two prominent personalities refused
to obey the commands of the Holy Prophet e .One of them is Hazrath Abu Bakr Siddique
t and the other Hazrath Ali Murtaza t.
Hazrath Ali Murtaza: t It was the occasion of the drafting of the Treaty Of
Hudaibiya and Hazrath Ali t wrote Muhammad, Messenger of Allah e. Suhail ibn
Amr objected saying we refuse to accept Muhammad e as Messenger of God, so
you should write, Muhammade the son of Abdullah. The Holy Prophet e
instructed Hazrath Alit to erase the words Messenger of Allah (Rasulullah) from
the document. Hazrath Ali t refused, saying we did not come here to erase the
name of the Messenger of Allah e but to uphold it. So the Holy Prophet e picked
up the paper and himself erased the words Messenger of Allah and himself wrote
Son of Abdullah3[3]. This was the first act recorded in Seerah that the Holy
Prophet e wrote, so that in future we may refute those who say he could not write.
2[2] Ibn Hibban #2960; Al Jaami` al Saheeh By Imam Al Bukhari Volume 2, 2.438: Narrated by Anas t

Hazrath Abu Bakr Siddique t: The Holy Prophet e went to some region to
teach the Muslims (islaah), it was the time of prayer, the call to prayer (azaan)
and summon to commence (iqaamah) was pronounced and Hazrath Abu Bakr
Siddique t went forward and led the prayer. Whilst salaah was in progress, the
Holy Prophet e arrived. As the Holy Prophet e arrived those engaged in prayer
(musallees) clapped their hands to attract the attention of Hazrath Abu Bakr
Siddiquet who began dragging his feet backwards to join the musallees. The Holy
Prophet e asked him to remain in his position as Imam but he refused. The Holy
Prophet e took the position of Imam and completed the prayer.

After the prayer the Holy Prophet e asked Abu Bakr Siddiquet, Why did you not
continue as Imam when I summoned you to? Abu Bakr Siddique t e replied, It does not
befit the son of Abu Qahaafa to stand ahead of the Holy Prophete.4[4] O Abu Bakr
Siddiquet! O Ali Murtazat! Is it not mentioned in the Holy Qur'aan that you should obey
the Holy Prophet e! Did you not see what happened to Iblis? They reply, Iblis refused
being arrogant ant wanting to be greater than the messenger. Our refusal was based on
reverence wanting to remain slaves of the Messenger. His refusal made him rejected
(mardood) whilst our refusal has made us beloved (mahboob). Do you see even refusal
based on love is blessed? One more point that comes to mind is that when the Holy
Prophete came to join the salaah did his thought not occur in the minds of the musallees?
They clapped? If any Scholar comes to you whilst praying and you clap will your salaah
be valid? Think! That was the age that the thought of the Holy Prophete whilst praying
3[3] The narratives of the life of the Prophete record an incident concerning the peace treaty of Hudaibiya
in which the Prophet, upon the objection of the Makkans, himself amended the written statement. One
such narrative, recorded by al-Bukhari, says: Narrated Al-Bara: When the Holy Prophete intended to
perform 'Umra in the month of Dhul-Qada, the people of Makkah did not let him enter Makkah till he
settled the matter with them by promising to stay in it for three days only. When the document of treaty
was written, the following was mentioned:

'These are the terms on which Muhammad, Allah's Apostle agreed (to make peace).' They said, "We will
not agree to this, for if we believed that you are Allah's Apostlee we would not prevent you, but you are
Muhammad bin 'Abdullah." The Prophetesaid, "I am Allah's Apostle and also Muhammad bin 'Abdullahe."
Then he said to 'Ali, "Rub off (the words) 'Allah's Apostle' ", but 'Ali said, "No, by Allah, I will never rub off
your name." So, Allah's Apostle took the document and wrote, 'This is what Muhammad bin
'Abdullahe has agreed upon: No arms will be brought into Mecca except in their cases, and nobody from
the people of Mecca will be allowed to go with him (i.e. the Prophete) even if he wished to follow him and
he (the Prophete) will not prevent any of his companions from staying in Mecca if the latter wants to
stay.'
[Sahih Bukhari, Volume 3, Book 49, Number 863, M. Muhsin Khan's translation, web version]

Such narratives quite clearly disprove the commonly held notion that the Prophete couldn't read or write.

4[4]

Bukhari: Chapter58, Book of Reconciliation, Hadith 2544

fragranced the prayer so how could it not be valid. Remember also that incident when the
Holy Prophet eis prostrate (sajda) and the infant Imam Hassan and Hussain tclimb onto
his back. The Holy Prophete prolonged his prostration. At this point we ask as to why did
the Holy Prophete go into prostration and why is he prolonging the prostration? The
answer being that he prostrated for the sake of AllahY and prolonged the prostration for
Imam Hussaint. So did not the thought of Imam Hussaint and love for him occur to the
Holy Prophete whilst he was in prayer? Was his prayer valid or not? If the prayer of the
grandfather is not invalidated when he thinks of his grandson then how can the prayer of
a follower not be accepted when he thinks of his Prophet e?

Regarding the Quraanic proclamation of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e in the 18th
Sura, al-Kahf, verse 110:

Which is wrongly translated as:


I am a man like you
And should be translated as
I am human as you are human (NOT like you)
I can challenge you that no messenger ever told his followers that he was like him or her.
They never said it to their followers but to the disbelievers. Also, no believer ever told
their Prophet that they are equal to him. In Tafsir ibn Kathir it is stated that this statement
was addressed to the unbelievers (kaafirs). When Allah Y said, kul, He said, O My
Belovede! Tell these unbelievers (kaafirs). I am not going into details due to divergence
from the main theme. No believer was told I am human like you. So those who say that
the Holy Prophete told us, then you should now the condition of his belief. The Holy
Prophet e was asked to tell this to those out of the fold and had not yet understood the
Prophets status. Here there is a beautiful point also, since AllahY asked the Holy
Prophete to proclaim, I am human being and did not want to even utter this being the
Creator. Think! What did those within the fold say about the Holy Prophet e?

Hazrath Abu Bakr Siddique t said, My eyes have never seen anyone as beautiful as you.
Hazrath Abu Hurraira t said, the sun is envious of your brilliance. Hazrath Ali t said,
"There has not been seen anyone as handsome before or after". Hazrath Hassan bin
Thabit t said, AllahY has preserved you from every defect; [Khuliqta mubarra am min
kulle aibin] AllahY has created you as if your creation was directed by you [Ka annaqa

tadkuliqtaka ma ta shaau]. [O Messenger of Allahe!] My eyes have not seen anyone as


beautiful as you [Wa ahsana min kalamtara qattu ainie] How could it when, none like
you has been born [Wa ajmala min kalamtali din nisau]. Hazrath Jibraeel u said, I
have gone to every corner of the universe, in all my time and in the entire universe I have
seen none like you. Ponder upon what has been said by those who saw the Holy Prophet
e and think how foolish these statements of these latter day fools are.

Therefore I say differentiate and distinguish yourselves. I often go to different venues to


lecture and am told I would be met at the airport as soon as I land. When I arrive at my
destination I found no known person had met me. With the use of a mobile phone I
usually contct the person deputed to meet me but had never met me before. He explains
to me that me my host had explained to him how to identify me by my way of dress. I
had not worn my kurta and usual hat, thus why the person did not recognize me. My host
had explained to him my recognition features. Friends, in the grave you will be asked to
recognize the Beloved Holy Prophet e therefore build your recognition of him from here.
I realized that my ceremonial dress , style of hat and turban and carrying a shawl in my
hand is neither compulsory (farz) nor near compulsory (waajib) but I have made it my
recognition feature and when I abondened it I had to endure distress. So understand the
masla. The functions of Meelad, Ur's, Fateha, Khatam visiting mazaars or the food of
kitchra, halwa etc is neither compulsory (farz) nor near compulsory (waajib) but has
become the identification of the Sunni Muslims of this age so I have to profess my
identification so that I am not wrongfully identified.

Love for the Holy Prophet Muhammad e is a measure of one's imaan (faith and inner
conviction) and our imaan is completed and perfected only when our love for the Prophet
exceeds our love for everything else in this world, including our own lives. The Holy
Quraan says in the 33rd Sura, al-Ahzaab in verse 6:

"The Prophet is closer to the believers even to their own selves..."


This defines a believer who believes the Holy Prophet Muhammad e is the cause of his
creation, hence closer than his self and emotionally one whom he holds closer to himself
in his heart, the seat of love.

The best of believers, the sahaba ,did show such love for the Prophet, especially the
noblest of them. Hazrath Ali, speaking on behalf of all the community of sahaba in
Madinah, is reported to have said:
"The Holy Prophet is dearer to us than our wealth, our children, our fathers, our
forefathers, our mothers and cool water at the time of severe thirst."

There are two dimensions to loving the Holy Prophet e:


1.

Muhabbat or loving the Holy Prophet e

2.

Ahabbiat or loving the Holy Prophet e above all else.

To love the Holy Prophet e is Faith (Iman) but to love him above
everything else is the perfection of faith (kamal--e-iman).
[Love of the Holy Prophet e is not measured by following his teachings. Although to
follow his teachings is a requisite for one that loves him. Iman does not allow an iota of
kufr or doubt regarding his person in ones heart despite the length of ones beard, size of
ones kurta and turban. To love him most is perfection of Iman. ]
So Faith (Iman) is loving the Holy Prophet e but I fear that people
might start whispering that there is a verse in the Holy Quraan that
says in the 2nd Sura, al-Baqarah: Verse 165

Those who have Iman are overflowing in their love for Allah
On the basis of this Verse one may say that love for Allah is Iman whilst I am saying to
love the Holy Prophet e is Faith (Iman).
There are two answers to this:
1.

ACCUSATORY ANSWER (Ilzami Jawaab)

Why do people want to separate the love of Allah and his Beloved e?
The love, respect and obedience of the Holy Prophet e is the love,
respect and obedience of Allah and the love, respect and obedience of

Allah is the love, respect and obedience of Holy Prophet e The


remembrance of Rasulallah e is the remembrance of Allah.

[The Holy Qur'aan says in 4 Th. Sura, al-Nisaa: Verse 150]

Do you wish to separate Allah from His Messengers?


Some propagators of the Unity of Allah (Tauhid) want to turn unity into duplicity.
Some people suffer from double vision. I give you a parable to explain what influence
this condition [the Wahabbi belief system] has had on the Ummat:

A teacher asked his student who suffered from double vision to go to the next
room and bring him his mirror. The student went into the room and returned enquiring as
to which mirror the teacher wanted since, due to his condition, he saw two mirrors. The
teacher seized the opportunity to teach his student a lesson. He gave his student a stone
and asked him to break one mirror and bring the other. The student threw the stone on
one mirror and he saw that both broke. He worriedly reported this to the teacher who
said, 'O immature student, you have double-vision, the mirror is one and you viewed it as
two'
O Immature Community of Holy Prophet e, the mirror of love for the Holy
Prophet e and the mirror of love for Allah is one. If you view it as two and try to break
one, the other will automatically break. O you who look towards the Green Dome of
Madinah cock-eyed. Those who fear the remembrance of Rasulallah e as associating
partners with Allah (shirk) and verbally throw stones at the Green Dome (gumbade
khazra) of Madinah the Illuminated, remember, on the day of Judgment (Qiyaamah) you
will ask, 'how did the Covering of the Kaaba burn when we were stoning the Green
Dome (gumbade khazra) of Madinah?' What gives you the permission to separate one
into two?

2. LEGALISTICALLY VERIFIED ANSWER (Tehkiki jawaab)


The verse in the 2nd Sura al-Baqarah: Verse 165 is clear that 'those who already possess
Iman'.

And what is the condition of that 'those who already possess Iman.

The Holy Quraan says , their condition is such that they 'are overflowing with love for
Allah. The question arises as to how did they acquire Iman? Iman is acquired by an allabsorbing love for the Holy Prophet e .The love for Rasulullah e gives them Iman and
the result of Iman is Allah Ys love. Love for the Holy Prophet e is the 'root' and the love
of Allah Y is the 'fruit'. The root has to be present in order to bear fruit. This is the legal
status of Allah Ys love.

Let Us Look At The Lives Of The Companions Of The Holy


Prophet (Sahabah):

HAZRATH ABU BAKR SIDDIQUE t


When Abu Bakr Siddique t was asked by the Holy Prophet e to express what three things
he loved most, he said:
1.

Al-Juloosu inda- I love most of all to sit in your blessed company daily.

2.

Wan nazru illay- I love that I get to see your beautiful face daily.

3.

Wan infaaku maalu illay- I love that I spend all my wealth on you.

This means the love of Abu Bakr t is to sit in the company of Holy Prophet e, look at his
beautiful face and spend everything he has on the Holy Prophet e.
[In another version of this Hadith it is said that he said,' I love that my daughter Ayesha is
married to you and she serves you daily].
From this one can see that the axis of Abu Bakr Siddique's love is the Holy Prophet e
Allah loves this so much that He kept Abu Bakr so close, that he lies buried next to
Rasulallah e. The Dome of the blessed grave of Rasulallah (Gumbade Rasul) is also the
Dome of the blessed grave of Abu Bakr Siddique (Gumbade Siddique). Abu Bakr
Siddique t has given this lesson from his blessed life that Faith (Iman) is to love the Holy
Prophet e.
HAZRATH UTHMAN GANI t

A man approached the Holy Prophet Muhammad e for assistance so that he may be able
to get his daughter married. Rasulullah e sent him to Uthman t. When he arrived at
Hazrath Uthman's door he found him scolding his servant for putting extra salt in the
food. He quickly left and went back to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e , thinking that if
the servant was being scolded for using extra salt, what would such a man give him. Holy
Prophet Muhammad e sent him back to Uthman. This time he found Uthman scolding
the servant for making the wick of the lamp too thick and hence oil was being wasted.
Again the man left and went back to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. Rasulullah e sent
him back and he found Uthman resting and relaxed. Quickly he told Uthman that Rasul e
had sent him and he stated his need. Uthman t stood up and told him to take whatever he
needed from the house. The man was surprised since he thought that Uthman was miserly
because of what he had witnessed earlier. Hazrath Uthman asked him why he had not
stated his case in the earlier two visits. He explained the situation to Uthman and Hazrath
Uthman explained to him that everything he owns including his life is the property of
Rasul e, hence he could not tolerate waste of the masters property. Since the master had
sent him, he has put everything at his disposal.

Any disobedience with regard to Allah Y , Rasulullah es intercession will save us, but
any disobedience with regard to Rasulullah e there is no forgiveness.

As narrated by Ibn Ishaq the husband, brother and father of a woman belonging to Bani
Dinar tribe were martyred in the Battle of Uhud. When she received the news of the
martyrdom of her dear ones, she enquired about the Holy Prophet and was told that he
was quite well and was not exposed to any danger. She, however, said: "I must go and see
the Holy Prophet myself". When she saw him and knew that he was safe, she said: "Now
that I have seen you alive and in good health every other calamity that may have befallen
us is of no consequence".
Irshad Soofi Siddiqui

Isra and Mera>j


(SCIENTIFIC EXPOSITION)
Allah Y says in the Holy Qur'aan in the 17th Sura al-Isra [The Night Journey]: Verse 1:

Glory to (Allah Y ) Who did take His servant for a Journey by night from the [Sacred
Mosque] to the Farthest Mosque, whose precincts We did bless, in order that We might
show him some of Our Signs: for He is the One Who Heareth and Seeth (all things).
Woh har Aalam kih rehmat heh, kissi Aalam meh rehjateh
Yeh unki meherbani heh, keh yeh Aalam pasand aaya
Woh har Aalam kih rehmat heh, Woh har Aalam meh rehte heh
Ba faize rehmatulil aalamien, rehmat hi rehmat heh
Kya muqaddar heh Bu Bakr-o-Faruq ka,
Un ka ghar rehmatoh ke kazineh me heh
Is liye Kaaba heh us taraf hi juka
Ghar Khuda ka Muhammad ke sine meh heh

I am deeply grateful to my creator Allah Y for giving us this opportunity to commemorate


the greatest event in the history of mankind and of the universe, namely the Ascension or
Mera>j of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. The exact date as to when it took place is
controversial. Ibn Kathir t quoted a number of different scholarly views in al-Bidayah
wan-Nihayah (3/108) concerning the exact date of Isra and Mera>j.
Majority of the scholars support a date between 12-16 months before the migration to
Madinah, they not only disagree about a particular day, but the month as well. However
scholars belonging to the majority school of The People who follow the Prophets Sunnah
and the Example of his Community (Ahl as- Sunna wal Jamaaa) agree took place in the
11th Year after the announcement of Prophethood or 621 C.E., during the latter part of the
27th night of Rajab.
The destruction of the Caliphate of Islam on March, 3, 1924 (27 Rajab 1342), the result
of a diabolical conspiracy hatched by the British and the Zionist Jews, with the Saudis
and the so-called salafi Wahabbis acting as willing accomplices rendered the Muslim
World powerless. One of the major reasons for Muslim decline is that their faith and
knowledge of Islam has declined. The impact of acquiring a very narrow, conservative
Islamic education and regarding what we mistakenly call Western education, especially at
a university level, as a vice has led some Muslims to reject important events in Islamic
History, which have a spiritual effect. Most people know the Holy Prophet e in respect of
his earthly constitution, in which he normally stayed and have failed to understand
anything beyond this earthly status due to ignorance. There are certain so-called
scholars who teach and preach that the Mera>j of the Holy Prophet e was only a dream,
because they regard it as some spiritual experience. However, the belief of the entire
Muslim world throughout the ages has been that the Mera>j took place with his total

personality and that the Holy Prophet Muhammad e went to the farthest regions of the
universe, and stayed in the transcendental region up to a point where no creature has ever
reached. This has been our belief, this has been the belief that Muslims have held
throughout these 1400+ years. This materialist theory that the Mera>j was only a
dream comes from those who do not understand the nature of this world, nor the human
constitution. The materialists do not understand the laws under which this world
functions, therefore, they try to interpret everything in material terms and in accordance
with their defective knowledge. The greatest tragedy being that some so-called Ulama
graduates of conservative institutes have reinforced this blasphemous belief that the Holy
Prophet e is just an ordinary human being basing it on their very defective understanding
of the Holy Qur'a>n when in reference to the earthly status of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e Allah Y says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the 18 th Sura, al-Kahf [The Cave] in
Verse 110:

O! Prophet! Proclaim to the people that I am nothing more than a human being,
Mislukum'.
Many people have stumbled on this verse because this word Mislukum can be translated
in two ways. One translation leads to disbelief (kufr) whilst the other translation is the
translation of Faith (Imaan). It has been translated by some as being like you This is
the translation on the basis of kufr. This statement is the greatest falsehood against the
Holy Qur'a>n and H{adi>th and is blasphemous against the personality of the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e.Blasphemy leads a person to kufr. No human being is like the
Holy Prophet e. The implication of the verse is to emphasize the humanity of the Holy
Prophet e so that Muslims do not fall prey, like others have, in view of his great qualities
and miraculous powers that Allah Y has given him. They may not fall into the
misconception that he is God or Son of God like others have fallen before them. It is
his divinity that is being denied here, not that he is like us. Although I and you and the
Holy Prophet e are human beings, there is a world of difference in point of status,
constitution of personality and powers. The verse emphasises his status with regard to the
temporal or mortal world in which we live.
Remember Allah has said in the Holy Quraan in the 49 th Sura, al-Hujura>t [The Inner
Apartments], Verse 2:

O Believers! Do not raise your voices above the pitch of the voice of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e and do not talk with him in the fashion, which you speak amongst
yourselves. If you commit even this slight unconscious mistake, all your virtuous acts
[prayer (s}ala>t), fasting (s}aum), pilgrimage (h}ajj), alms (zaka>t), and every act
of virtue] will be annulled totally and you will not even know it.
What is this status? You will forgive any insult done to you but you will never forgive
any insult done to your beloved. This is the law of love. If for a single error, of
disrespect to Alla>h Y's beloved, every act of virtue is annulled, how much must Alla>h
Y love him? He does not even give the blasphemer, the divine help (Taufiq) to realise he
has sinned, thus the door of repentance remains closed. Beware of this. The great
Possessors of Recognition (aarifeen), those who rose to spiritual eminence, they say:
Adab gahez zehre asmah az arsh nazuk tah , Nafas ghum kar dami ayaad Junaid
oh Bayazid Jah
There is a place where respect has to be offered and that place is more delicate than the
arsh of God, when great spiritual luminaries from amongst his followers like Hazrath
Junaid Baghdadi t and Hazrath Bayazid Bistami t come to the Holy Prophet e in word
or deed, they come trembling
What are Muslims being taught? They have lost the source of blessing and they feel that
they can get grace from Alla>h Y.The source of blessing as established by Alla>h Y is
only the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. There is no other source. There are numerous
blasphemous beliefs which are being propagated in the name of true Islam, genuine Islam
and orthodox Islam and the beliefs of Muslims throughout these 1400 years are being
challenged, as beliefs mixed up with superstitions, not the real beliefs and that these socalled reformers have now come to know what Islam exactly was. But, The fact is that
Islam is from Alla>h Y and whatever the sahaba were taught by the Holy Prophet e they
transmitted to the tabieen , who transmitted it to the tabe-tabieen and coming to us
through generations.
A proper examination and analysis of the life of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e, when
viewed in its totality, would surely reveal that his miraculous journey by night from
Makkah to Jerusalem (Isra) and thence, through the heavens, to the special divine
presence (Mera>j), is a lesson for those who ponder on another dimension of his
blessed personality, i.e. the transcendental dimension. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e

did not have his body and spirit as two things, nor do I have it, nor do you. The body is
only the manifestation of the projection in the spatial-temporal dimension of the soul. The
real human personality is a point of light in intense motion. This point of light in intense
motion is the transcendental factor which was created by Allah Y in the Garden of Eden
and which was there and which projects itself in the spatial-temporal dimension and
assumes the form of the body. When it projects itself only in the temporal dimension it
assumes the form of mind. Mind is only temporal, whilst body is spatial-temporal. The
moment this human personality withdraws itself, there is nothing left. This is the meaning
of death. The consciousness is a part and parcel of the soul. We call it ar-Ru>h}. The
word ru>h} in Arabic means the essence not the soul. Essence is the exact meaning of
the word ru>h} .The Mera>j In modern and ancient philosophy there has been given a
vital importance to this distinction between the concept of essence and the concept of
existence, as to whether essence or existence is the basic factor in connection with a
certain thing. We say in Islam that existence precedes essence and that human beings
existed in the knowledge of God. They were not then even essences but only ideas. When
those ideas crystallized, the first form that they took was essence, which is the exact
meaning of the word ru>h} . The Arabic ar-Ru>h means The Essence. This essence
has evolved under the Divine Law for billions of years and emerged here in the spatialtemporal dimension as this person. It will travel away from here at the time of death. It
will be the essence with all the accumulated properties which it accumulated in the
process. So to say that, I have got a body, mind and soul is the talk of ignorant people. A
scientist, philosopher or Muslim i.e. a believer in the Holy Qur'aan, should not talk in this
fashion. The most important contribution that the Holy Qur'aan has made in the history of
mankind is the principle of Unity or Tauhid. We are ahle Tawh}}i>d . Due to
ignorance people understand Tawh}}i>d as being God is one. Again they are wrong for
God is not one. If you say that God is one, i.e. numerically one then you are committing
kufr because the numerical one is a finite concept whilst God is infinite. He is not an
mathematical one. He is unity. There is a big difference between the concept of the
numerical one and the concept of unity.

The Holy Prophet Muhammad e is the essence of the creation of the universe (ar-Ru>h
al-qayina>t). The Qur'aan also bears testimony to this that the Holy Prophet e is the
essence of creation. It explicitly affirms this fact when Alla>h Y asks the Holy Prophet e
to say in the 6th Sura al- Ana>m [The Cattle] Verse 163:

I am the first among Muslims


Muslim here refers to the first thing or being to submit to the will of
Alla>h Y and not the misuse it has been put to in these days of

bickering. Muslim means all creation that submits entirely to the will of
God.
In another verse Allah says in the 3rd Sura, A<l-i- Imra>n [The Family of
Imra>n] Verse 83:

Everything in the heaven and earth is Muslim


Then, what would the statement, ' I am the first among the Muslims mean? That the first
being to be created by Alla>h Y was the Holy Prophet e.. It has been the consensus of
Muslim belief which was challenged only in this period of Muslim decay and
degeneration, under the impact of modern materialism, that the Holy Prophet Muhammad
e is the nucleus of creation, for Alla>h Y created the light of the Holy Prophet e and
from that light He created the whole universe. In the H{adi>th quoted on the authority
of muh}addith ' abd al- Razza>q t, (the eminent fore runner of Imam Bukhari t and
author of al-Mus}annaf) by Alla>ma Yusuf bin Isma> il al-Nabha>ni t in AlAnwa>r al-Muh}ammadiyyah min Mawa>hib al-Ludunniyah 5[1] t and quoted by
Moulana Ashraf Ali Thanvi one of the very eminent ulama of Deoband in his book
Nashrut teeb fi zikre Habeeb. Hazrath Jabir bin Abdullah al-Ansari t reports that the
Holy Prophet e informed him that:

The first thing which Alla>h Y created was my light, and every other creation was
created from my light."
Science bears testimony to this fact today. Remember Science came to the Modern West
from the world of Islam. It was the Muslims who after the conquest of certain parts of
Europe, especially Spain that established the first universities, scientific observatories,
laboratories and libraries on the soil of Europe and the first Christian scientists who, after
centuries of darkness and ignorance, lit the torch of scientific knowledge in England,
France, Germany and so on, were pupils of Muslim masters. 6[2] Einstein was asked,
how did this universe come into existence?. He answered: the entire universe must
have begun as a point of light in intense motion and the point of light projected itself on
the tape of extension and became space and the intense motion of that point of light
5[1]

Al-Anwa>r al-Muh}ammadiyyah min Mawa>hib al-Ludunniyah, page 12, Beirut 1310 A.H.

6[2] Ansari F.R. ; Quraanic Foundations and Structure of Muslim


Society, Volume One, Chapter 2, page 35

projected itself on the tape of duration and became time. The experiment of physical
analysis is pursued on the principle of heat, by raising temperature and disintegrating a
particular thing into its finer constituent particles prove that the essence of all matter is
light. [Refer to Hubert Reeves, the Canadian Astro-physicist. Read his light radiation
theory]. The essential human being therefore is a space less and timeless being. (ar
Ru>h} - the essence al- Asl). All matter is therefore ultimately anti-matter and all the
properties of matter ultimately cease to exist, since the essential being was created in the
transcendental world called al Jannah. When Allah willed the universe to exist He said,
Be Muhammad (kun Muhammadah). Therefore the real Muhammad e is the foundation
of the universe and all creation came through him. Mera>j (Ascension) can be
understood in terms of a transcendental transformation of the personality of the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e by Alla>h Y It should be noted that some scholars who subscribe
to no adequate notion either of the nature of human personality or of the dimensions of the
personality of a Messenger of Allah e - whose view of religious verities is, for all
practical purposes, either formalistic or naturalistic consider it necessary to explain
away or minimize every supernatural, or metaphysical, element of the Holy Prophet es
personality.

Alla>h Y says in the Holy Qur'aan in the 53rd Sura an- Najm [The Star]: Verse 1:

By the star when it goes down


Urdu transalation by Ala Hazrath Imam Ahmad Raza Khan t
Us pyaare chamakte taare Muhammad e ki kasam jab Mera>j seh uthre
I take an oath by that Beloved Shining Star Muhammad es return from the Meraj
This Chapter (Sura) of the Holy Qur'aan, an- Najm [The Star] , deals with the Mera>j
of the Holy Prophet e. The first Verse (Ayat) is short yet it has a depth of meaning.
Alla>h Y speaks of the Holy Prophet e and takes an oath (kasam) by him.
The origin of the universe
Najm means 'star'. As a noun it means original' (Asl) or root, from where something
originates. In Hadith literature for a Hadith that has no source or origin it is said,
Haza Hadith ullazi la najma lahu.
This Hadith has no source or root.

Root is from which something originates.


Imam Jaafar Saadiq t commenting on this verse states:
"An Najm Huwa Muhammadun e
Najm refers to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e
Therefore the 53rd Sura an- Najm [The Star]: Verse 1 can be translated as:
"I swear by the Holy Prophet Muhammad e the origin"
The question that arises is the origin of what or whom! What is it
associated with? Alla>h Y says, ' My Beloved Holy Prophet e is the
origin of this entire universe.' The universe contains 'the creator'
and 'the creation'. The Holy Prophet e is the origin of everything
other than Allah. He is the origin of Jinn, Man, Earth, Heaven and
Divine Throne (Arsh); i.e. of everything created. The personality of our
beloved Holy Prophet Muhammad e is the most marvelous in creation.
It is only through his human emergence in history that we have come
to know him. But the real Holy Prophet Muhammad e is a cosmic
personality. It is the foundation of the entire universe.
The one aspect of his personality is universal and the other is mundane
(earthly). Alla>h Y says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the 21st Sura, al
Anbiya>a [The Prophets], Verse 107:

O! Prophet!I have not sent you but as a mercy to all the worlds.
All the worlds! This is beyond this earth and humanity. This is called the cosmic or
universal level. He is the mercy for the entire creation of Allah i.e. the universe. Who
else can be a mercy unto all the worlds than he from whose light the universe has been
created? And when we were taught that the Holy Prophet Muhammad e is the medium
(wasila) between man and God. How can it be otherwise? What else links this world with
Alla>h Y except His first creation which is the light of Muhammad e. Alla>h Y is
Almighty and does not need any wasila for Himself but He has made the universe and it
is His mercy that the creation needs wasila and human beings need wasila to realise
Him. For His realization Alla>h Y kept himself hidden but He has made the wasila to
know Him. How can a human being know Alla>h Y Allah is all Mighty and all Powerful,
He does not need any wasila, but He has made a universe that is in need. The angels are
intermediaries, mediating between Creator and creation, performing functions for Alla>h
Y, and when it is said that the highest in Alla>h Ys creation is the intermediary why do

we not accept. If this room should be illuminated with lamps of one thousand watts each,
everybody will go mad. The intense light rays will penetrate the brain. Imagine the
Majesty of Alla>h Y , the Infinite Majesty and Grandeur, the Infinite intensity of His
"Light" when He says in the 24th Sura, Nu>r [Light], Verse 35:

Allah is the Light of the heavens and the earth.


One most important attainment of the numerous extra-ordinary gifts and virtues given to
the Holy Prophet e on the night of Mera>j, is. the Holy Prophet e being blessed with
seeing Almighty Allah Y. Allah Y has blessed the Holy Prophet Muhammad e with many
virtues, gifts, blessings and as the Holy Qur'aan says [53rd Sura an- Najm [The Star]:
Verse 11]:

For undoubtedly he saw, of the Greatest signs of his Lord!


Many deny that the Holy Prophet e was blessed with the vision of Allah Y in his
Mera>j saying that the being whom he saw was the angel Jibraeel u (Gabriel). As for
the H{adi>th literature both, the views, viz., vision of Alla>h Y and vision of
Jibraeel u -are deducible. But as for the Holy Qur'a>n, it affirms the vision of Allah
Y in the transcendental dimension of existence, i.e. life in heaven, even for the true
followers of the Messengers of Allah Y - not to speak of the Messengers of Allah Y
themselves. The view reported to have been put forward by Lady Ayesha y7[3] should
be' taken to, relate basically to the impossibility of seeing,' Allah Y with the physical
vision; and, as such, it is an absolutely correct view. The Holy Prophet e Mera>j was;
however, an event of unique nature in which it should be accepted that his sacred
personality had been transformed by Allah Y from the physical to the transcendental
dimension of existence8[4] - the same dimension in which his true followers who, in
7[3]
8[4] Qualitative transformations are all the time taking place in Nature.
Thus, the view presented here is in accordance with the Natural Law.
Also: this view synthesizes the partial views in which one school of
thought-the minority' school-emphasises that Mera>j was just a
'spiritual' experience like other spiritual experiences, in which the Holy
Prophet's soul alone was the subject of experience, while the other
school - representing an overwhelming majority of Muslims in history

their status, are simply non-entities as compared with his status as Allah Ys greatest
Messenger, will exist in Heaven, and will, therefore, become capable of being blessed
with the vision of Allah Y:
Allah Y says in the Holy Qur'aan in the 75th Sura al-Qiya>mat [The Resurrection]:
Verses 22 and 23:

Some faces, that Day, will beam (in brightness and beauty); Looking towards their Lord;
Allah Y says in the Holy Qur'aan in the 17th Sura al-Isra [The Night Journey]: Verse 60:

We granted the Vision which We showed you, as a test for men,


Hazrath Abdullah ibn Abbas t comments on this verse9[5] as referring to the vision of
Alla>h Y on the Mera>j. Those that deny the Holy Prophet Muhammad e was blessed
with the Vision of Alla>h Ys countenance are astray whilst those that accept without a
doubt become testifiers to the truth i.e. Siddique. blessings and virtues were given to
other Prophets in accordance with their status, but all these blessings and much more
were bestowed upon our Holy Prophet Muhammad e. The combined blessings radiated
in their full glory in the personality of the Holy Prophet e. But, the vision of Allah Y
(ruya) and seeing the essence (didaar) was exclusively given to our Holy Prophet,
Muhammad e. In the verse of the Holy Qur'aan that I recited Allah Y says:

The blessed heart in no way falsified that what he saw.


Allah Y is saying that, whatever was seen by the blessed eye of My Beloved was in no
way erroneously registered by his blessed heart. Meaning the seat of love or the source
-gives prominence to the participation of the Holy Prophet es body in
that entire event!.
9[5] Nadvi. Sayed Sulaiman: Sirat un-Nabi, Page 427

from which love flows into the entire universe, the nucleus of the soul of the universe, the
heart of the Holy Prophet e validated what was seen by the blessed eye. How the blessed
heart validated the didaar is an issue that needs to be explained in some detail (tafseer).
Based on reports recorded on this issue from the time of the Companions (Ashaab) and
the great Imams (aimma) there have been differences in the conclusions of the scholars
(Ulama). Some have said that the Holy Prophet e did not see Allah Y whilst many
sahaba, tabieen and aimma have adhered to the school of thought and stated that without
doubt, the Holy Prophet e saw Allah Y. Those sayings of the sahaba in which it is stated
that the Holy Prophet e did not see Allah Y are explained by them as meaning the Holy
Prophet e did not see Allah Y in this world and in no way is it a negation of the vision of
the Holy Prophet e during the Mera>j

Allah Y says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the 6th Sura, al-Anaam [The Cattle], Verse 103:

No vision can grasp Him.


The physical eye cannot comprehend Allah Y but on the in reference to the Mera>j
when it is stated by Allah Y in the Holy Qur'aan in the 53rd Sura an- Najm [The Star]:
Verses 8 and 9:

Then he approached and came closer, And was at a distance of but two bow-lengths or
(even) nearer;
During the Mera>j the Holy Prophet e saw the entire universe-including Alla>h Y
-from highest point.This was the station at which the Holy Prophet e was uniquely
blessed at which point the all distances were removed, proximity (qurbat), union (wisaal)
reached perfection (kamaal) and Allah Y radiated His essence on the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e. Many sahaba have supported the vision of Allah Y by the Holy Prophet e
including Hazrath Abdullah ibn Abbas t. Imam Hassan Basri t when referring to the
vision of Allah Y by the Holy Prophet e says, I swear by Allah Y that my Holy Prophet
Muhammad e saw Allah Y, he saw Allah Y, he saw Allah Y. This was the level of his
conviction. Imam Ahmad bin Hamnbal t, on being asked if the Holy Prophet e saw
Allah Y said, Most definitely, The Messenger of Allah e, saw Allah Y, he saw Allah Y,
he saw Allah Y (Raa, Rasulullahi e, Rabbahu, Raa Rabbahu, Raa Rabbahu). He
ecstatically continued saying this till he was out of breath. This means he had such

certainty of this belief that he declares it with fervor. By making reference to the incident
of Hazrath Musa u, at Mount Sinai understanding this matter and blending the three
views will be made simpler. According to 7th Sura, al-Araaf [The Heights], Verse 143,
Hazrath Musa u at Mount Sinai (Tur) respectfully requested from Allah Y:

O My Allah Y! Bless me with a vision of You


The verse continues that in response to this request Allah Y replied:

[O My dear Musa u!] You cannot see me.


I have discussed this in my previous lectures and lessons on the Miraaj. The words lan
tarani affirms this that Hazrath Musa u could not see Allah Y, but it did not say that it is
impossible to see Allah Y or that none has the ability to see Allah Y. This answer, you
cannot see me (lan tarani) has hidden within it advice (wazaaat) and the negation of the
ability to see hides an affirmation that, O Musa! I can be seen, by that eye that has been
equipped through My abundant blessing with the ability to see Me, but My dear Musa!
You dont possess this ability. Allah Y said in this 7th Sura, al-Araaf [The Heights],
Verse 143 :

[My dear Musa u!] I will manifest a radiation (tajalli) upon this mountain [tajalli refers
to being unveiled] so you fix your gaze upon the mountain if it can bear the impact of
My radiation and stand firm in its place then you will see Me."
So the word tajalli refers to being unveiled and to unveil and radiate beauty: The verse
continues:

When Allah Y unveiled His Beauty, Glory and Light on the mountain, the mountain could
not bear the impact of this Majestic unveiling and it burned to ashes, and Hazrath Musa u
fell down unconscious.
Allah Y had laid a condition in the Holy Qur'aan, If the mountain remained steady (fa
innistakarra maqanahu) then Hazrath Musa u, you would see Me. Meaning if the
mountain could have borne the impact of the radiation of Allah Ys beauty and stood
firmly then Hazrath Musa u would have seen Allah Y (fa sowfa tarani). Let us now
comment on what Allah Y says in the Holy Qur'aan in the 53rd Sura an- Najm [The Star]:
Verse 11:

The blessed heart in no way falsified that what the eye saw.
The method of revelation would be to have a reflector capable of reflecting His Majestic,
Glorious, and Beautiful radiation. Allah Y through His grace brought the Holy Prophet e
to the spiritual station (maqam) of proximity of two bows forming a circle (qaba
qowsain) and ahead to the spiritual station of the thin line of glue sticking the ends of the
bows together (ow adna). The blessed eyes of the Holy Prophet e that desired the Divine
Vision most surely belonged to the Blessed physical body of the Holy Prophet e but the
blessed heart of the Holy Prophet e was higher in status than the Divine Throne of Allah
Y (arsh)10[6]. The supreme spiritual station of the beloveds heart was so great that Allah
Y wished to bless His Holy Prophet e with a vision of Him at that maqam. The heart of
the Holy Prophet e was used as the reflector (mazhar) and although the eye saw the Holy
10[6] al-arsh: The Divine Throne. Allah Y , Who is without place, created a heaven called al-arsh where the radiations of His
Essence are centered. This Throne upon which Allah Y "sits" is the seat of those Divine Names that are bound to a place
(muqayyidah). The Divine Word (al-kalimat al-ilahiyya) which descends from Allah Y contains the Sacred Law within which is all
knowledge. The "place" of Unity of the Word is His Throne (al-arsh). Beneath the Throne is His Footstool (al-kursi) where the Word
becomes differentiated into rulings (hukm) and reports (khabar). And, although the earth and the heaven do not contain Allah Y the
heart of His slave does contain Allah. Such a heart is al-arsh. It is the heart of the Lover of Allah Y and around it the spiritual realities
circle. Al-arsh is the universal manifestation taken in its total unfolding. The greatest heart is that of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e
All knowledge and love are an overflowing from his heart.

Prophet e says. curtains of light could be seen, concealing the essence for I could only
see light (nurun anna raha). So the blessed pure heart of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e
was made by Allah Y into the reflector of His essence. On Mount Sinai , Allah Y only
manifested a radiation of His attribute of Beauty (jalwa-e-sifat) not the manifestation of
the radiation of His essence (jalwa-e-zaat). Prophets are reflectors of the manifestation
Allah Ys attributes (sifati mazhar), The Friends of Allah t (Aulia) are reflectors of the
manifestation Allah Ys names (ismi-mazhar), whilst the entire creation are reflectors of
the manifestation Allah Ys actions (afaali-mazhar). Exclusively, the Crown and Cause of
Creation, the Holy Prophet Muhammad e is the manifestation of the radiation of Allah
Ys essence (jalwa-e-zaat). In him alone is integrated the manifestation Allah Ys
attributes (sifati mazhar), the manifestation Allah Ys names (ismi-mazhar) and the
manifestation Allah Ys actions (afaali-mazhar). These are all the reflection of the status
(darajah) of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e,but his excellence is this that through Allah
Ys grace he has assimilated in his personality the manifestation of the radiation of Allah
Ys essence (jalwa-e-zaat). Taking into consideration the conclusion, No eye can see
Allah Y therefore the Holy Prophet e did not see him: Allah Y said, My beloved if the
eye cannot see Me unveiled then I know that there is no restriction for your blessed heart
(qalb). There fore We are making your heart the place of manifestation of the radiation of
My (jalwa-e-zaat). I am radiating and manifesting on your blessed heart in such a manner
that through being the mazhar of My essence it will reach the station (maqam) of lamakaan. As the radiations of My essence are radiating in la-makaan similarly your heart
is radiating the manifestation of My essence (jalwa-e-zaat). As We said to Hazrath Musa
u if the mountain could have borne the impact of the radiation of My attribute and stood
firmly then Hazrath Musa u would have seen Allah Y (fa innistakarra maqanahu fa
sowfa tarani). Similarly if your heart stands firmly bearing the impact of the
manifestation of the radiation of My essence (zaat) and the manifestation of the
radiations of the essence of My Beauty (husn-e-zaat) and assimilates it within, unshaken
and consciously then your eyes will look at your heart and see Me reflected therein. So if
your blessed eye cannot catch sight of Me directly then I will radiate with My essence
into your blessed heart.
aainae dil me he tasweere yaar
Jab zara gardan jukali dekhli
In the mirror of my heart is the picture of my beloved
When I lower my neck, I see my beloved
So My beloved, when your eye looks at your heart, You will see My essence. My
radiations will be in your heart. [Allah Y says in the Holy Qur'aan in the 53rd Sura anNajm [The Star]: Verse 17]:

The Blessed eye (of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e) did not deviate, nor exceeded the
limit

So the eye saw and the heart reflected [53rd Sura an- Najm [The
Star]: Verse 11:

The blessed heart in no way falsified that what the blessed eye saw.
The eye saw and the heart verified the vision. Some may think that the Holy Prophet e
could have seen something else but only the possessor; his blessed heart can be the
verifier. . The difference was that Mount Sinai could not bear the impact of Allah Ys
attributive radiation, whilst the blessed heart of the Holy Prophet e could bear the impact
of the manifestation of the essence. So the blessed heart saw the vision of Allah Y in such
a way that it became radiant itself whilst the blessed eye saw Allah Y reflected in the
heart. So both the eye and the heart saw. If only Mount Sinai stood firmly and could have
become the mazhar of the jalwa-e-Ilahi then Hazrath Musa u would have seen the Divine
Splendour. Neither did Mount Sinai nor Hazrath Musa u stand firm. Hazrath Musa u was
rendered unconscious by the indirect radiation.
When Hazrath Musa u regained consciousness he said [7th Sura, al-Araaf [The Heights],
Verse 143]

When he recovered his senses he said: "Glory be to Thee! To Thee I turn in repentance,
Hazrath Musa u repented from his request but the desire to see Allah Y increased.
Scholars (Ulama) have not written this bit my heart says that after the incident the desire
must have increased many fold. Respect in the Court of Allah Y demanded repentance but
that indirect contact and the beautiful loss of consciousness, giving a taste of contact must
have ignited the desire. A slight taste ignited the prevalent desire. He who does not taste
cannot have an appetite. Hazrath Musa u must have lived, in this temporal world and in
the permanent abode of beauty with this burning desire to have a vision of Allah Y. The
night of Miraaj arrived and the Holy Prophet e was returning then Hazrath Musa u must
have said to Allah Y, My Allah Y! Mount Sinai could not become the reflector of You,
but the heart of Your Beloved e, has become the mazhar, so please fulfill my request and
desire to see You. Allah Y replied, My dear Musa! I will grant My Beloved fifty salaah
for his community and you wait on his path of return. I know that eventually I will
reduce it to five salaah but since you are also a beloved Prophet of Mine I will satisfy
your desire. When you meet the Holy Prophet e enquire as to how many salaah was
given. When he tells you the amounts, ask him to return to Me to request a reduction.

Most books report that initially at Mount Sinai, Hazrath Musa u had requested nine times
to see Allah Y and that this meeting between Hazrath Musa u and the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e occurred nine times and the Holy Prophet e was sent back to reduce the
salaah nine times. So the nine requests of Hazrath Musa u were fulfilled when he saw the
Holy Prophet Muhammad e. So people say that the Holy Prophet e did not see Allah Y,
whereas we say, Not only did he see Allah Y but he reflected from his blessed heart the
reflection of Allah Y to those who could not see. He beheld the Divine Countenance and
showed it to Hazrath Musa u. So the Holy Prophet e became the perfect reflector
wherein Allah Ys attributes, names and essence manifests (mazhar). Therefore when the
Holy Prophet e returned he stated (mar-raani faqad ra al-Haq) He who has seen me
has seen Allah Y.
Jamali Kanboh, an Indo - Persian poet of the late 15 century summed up the essence of
this in a famous couplet. He said,

"Musa Bahosh raft bayak jalwae sifat, tu ain zaat minagari dar tabasumi
Musa went out of his mind by a single revelation of the Attributes, you see the essence of
the Essence, and still smile."
Everything in this world is constantly in need of the "Light" of Alla>h Y.Nothing in
this world can survive without that radiation of Divine Light flowing into it. Unless the
proper connection between this universe and Alla>h Y remains, this universe will vanish.
Just as we use transformers to step the voltage down, Almighty Alla>h Y created the
"First transformer", the "heart" of the Holy Prophet e to link this world to Alla>h Y.
This status of Wasila was given to our the Holy Prophet Muhammad e because he is the
nucleus of the existence of the universe. Thus Alla>h Y says in the Holy Qur'a>n
regarding this universe in the 3rd Sura al-i-Imraan [The Family of Imraan]: Verse 185:

The life of this world is but fleeting images.


Maulana Fazlur Rahman Ansari t translates the word mataal guroor as fleeting images.
Ibn Kathir t in his explication11[7] (tafseer) of these words explains it as mean and
vanishing. Of course this world and all it contains is a projection of Alla>h Y saying
(kun Muhammada) Be Muhammad e. My love tells me that on the night of Mera>j
the projection of kun was withdrawn hence no images remained. The total personality of

11[7] Al-Hafiz Imad al-Din abu fidaa Ismail bin Kathir Ibn al Dimishki t.
Explication of the Holy Qur'a>n Volume 1, Page 352

the Holy Prophet Muhammad e was ushered into the Divine Presence and hence the
entire world ceased to exist.
Dil jis se zinda heh who tamanna tumi toh hoh
Ham jis me bas rahe he woh dunya tumi toh hoh

The universe resumed functioning as soon as he was ushered back into it. The fact that
we live in a functioning world is proof of the presence (haazir) of the soul of the
universe or (ar-Ru>h al-qayina>t). Therefore, unless we understand the personality of
the Holy Prophet e the events of the Mera>j
would remain inconceivable and
dogmatic or we will doubt that the event occurred. When the world stopped functioning,
this was a close/intense meeting of the independent Light of the Creator (Nure Uluwiat.)
and the created and dependent light of the Holy Prophet e (Nure Muhammadiat).
Nothing existed except the Light of the Holy Prophet e (nure Mustafa). How long Allah
kept the nure Mustafa in His presence. What must have been the effect of this proximity
and what the Holy Prophet must have brought when he was sent back? Remember if
someone gets close to a being that has the strength to affect whatever is near it and the
one near has the strength to receive the effect, then some effect had to take place. E.g.
when a piece of iron is put into the fire, that has the power to transfer and iron has the
power to take. The piece of iron after being encompassed by the fire, acquires the
attributes of the fire and is red hot and able to burn. Ask the piece of iron where it
acquired heat and the ability to burn? It answers I was in the company of an existence
which was hot and I was close to that existence. That which was in me, got annihilated
and that which was in that existence I assimilated. This is called 'the effect of company'
or (suhbat ka asr). Remember, all the prophets proclaimed the Tawh}}i>d but only the
Holy Prophet Muhammad e is a witness to the Unity of God. Others have based their
testimony on the basis of knowledge (ilm), certainty (yaqeen), audition (samaat) but
none on witnessing (ruyat). The Possessors of Faith, the Inmates of Paradise will see
The One Allah (al-Waahid). What will be seen and felt cannot be explained nor
understood. They will see al-Waahid but will not see His Oneness (wahdaniyah). Unity
cannot be witnessed but our Holy Prophet e saw both once on his initial creation
(meelad) and again in the Mera>j. All differences were abolished here, except one; he is
the created whilst Allah is the creator. The Quraan says in 4th Sura, an- Najm [The Star] ,
Verse 150,

Do not make differences between or separate Allah and His Messengers


According to the H{adi>th the Angel Jibraeel u came and performed a surgical
operation on the Holy Prophet e and the vehicle, Burraq an electrically propelled
vehicle, (lightning - from barqun ) came. It's a scientific fact that if we travel in space
indefinitely we would reach the outskirts of the visible cosmos in about twenty billion
years provided that we travel at the speed of light (barq) i.e. 186 000 miles per second

(300,000 km/s). The Holy Prophet Muhammad e traveled the multiple (burraq) speed of
light. They reached a point where Angel Jibraeel u said that neither himself nor his
vehicle could go any further, because they will be destroyed beyond that point. All these
utterances were made in history when no human being had any idea of electricity or an
electrically propelled vehicle. This idea was used fourteen hundred years ago, and has
become a reality only today! If the hadith was a forgery, how could a person think about
it that time? Therefore, how can one think that the ascension of our Holy Prophet e was
impossible. The human being is essentially a spaceless and timeless being. Such was the
Holy Prophet e whose nature could overcome the limits of time and space.

This human personality has different "modes" or "gears". The normal "gear" keeps us to
this earth. But if the other "gear" can be used, which has been used by Alla>h Y
Almighty, through that operation which has been spoken of in the hadith, his level of
existence was changed. It was changed to his own nature - a spaceless and timeless being.
Thus, he was not limited by space and time.

We know about different types of time: mechanical time, psychological time, biological
time, metaphysical time, serial time, plus time, minus time, zero time, etc. The nature of
minus time is such that if one travels in minus time that person actually reduces in age.
These are the teachings of the scientists. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e journeying
upwards through plus time and beyond brought him back to his original state of creation
i.e., nur. Similarly with light (nur) of which there are different types: alpha rays, beta
rays, gamma rays, x-rays, infra-red, ultra-violet rays, etc. The laws that govern these
different types of rays are not the same. Now imagine that the vehicle that was sent by
Almighty Alla>h Y was made in such a fashion as to exceed the speed of light. In how
much time could it have traveled five hundred kilometers? Probably in zero time! In no
time would he have arrived at zero time. Then we have minus time.We should try to
understand the event of Mera>j by observing the natural phenomena and the laws
Alla>h Y placed in them.

May Almighty Allah grant us the understanding to accept this message and make us
people who acquire al-ilm and extreme love for the Holy Prophet Muhammad e Then
only can we reclaim al-Haram al Kaaba and al-quds from the Saudis and Yahudis

Irshad Soofi Siddiqui , 27 Rajab 1426, 1 September 2005

The Living Prophet!

Who is the Holy Prophet e? What is his status? What


is his personality? What is the nature of his
personality and all their allied questions? There are
numerous confusions, especially in this age of doubt
and the impact of materialism that are arising in the
mind of Muslims. Everybodys level of knowledge is
not the same whether he maybe called an Alime Deen or whatever. The comprehension of facts
through knowledge varies from person to person.
These problems arise because those who come
forward to understand the problem view it with their
subjective limitations. This should not be made into
the grounds for fighting and theological bickering
when you hear views expressed about the Holy
Prophet e that many of us would consider as
derogatory. E.g. People read the same book but
some recognize the Alphabets and some the words.
Others will read sentences and paragraphs. Those
with higher education will know the language in
which it is written, the Subject, Theme, Sub Theme
and Inter related Subjects. Therefore knowledge is
either of a higher order or lower order. Those who
can see as far as their nose, they can see that far
and no further. How can we call them dishonest and
make their limited knowledge the grounds for
fighting.

You will find people of knowledge of a lower order


saying, " The Holy Prophet Muhammad e is just a
mortal like us. Yet you will find great intellectual
giants of this 20 C like the great Sir Muhammad
Iqbal t who as a poet of Islam is incomparable with

anyone else before him except, Maulana Jalalluddin


Rumi t, saying:



'
!
Woh dana eh subul , khatmur rusul , moula e kul , jis neh , gubare raah koh
bakhsha , faroghe waadiyeh sina. Nigaheh ishqoh masti meh , wohi
awwal , wohi akhir , wohi Qur'aan , wohi Fur'qaan , wohi Ya-sin , wohi Tahah
That possessor of the knowledge of the parts of guidance; that terminator of the
office of divine messenger ship; that leader of all creation; who illuminated the sand
below the feet of the caravan of his followers into the illumined soil of Sinai. The
Prophet e from the point of view of love is the first; and it is he who is the last; and it
is he who is the Qur'aan and it is he who is the standard of right and wrong in this
entire universe. He is Ya-sin and Ta-ha

When Islam came to non-Arab countries, they did not become Muslims through the
Holy Quraan, because they could not understand the Holy Quraan. We speak about
the Miracle of the Holy Quraan [Mujizatul Quraan]; most Arabs dont know the
Miracle of the Holy Quraan. The modern Arabs dont know because the have not
studied Qurnic Eloquence (balaagha).
One such example of Qurnic eloquence (balaagha) is Surah Maryam, verse 4. In it, the
Prophet Zakariyyah u is praying to Allah Y to bless him with a child, and describes his
old age: (19th Sura, Maryam: verse 4)

'He said, O My Lord! Indeed my bones have grown feeble, and grey hair has spread
on my head...

The Arabic of the last portion of the verse is


ishtha'ala ar-rasu shayba. This phrase, despite its conciseness (only three words), is
indicative of the eloquence of the Qurn, and az-Zamakhsharee is able to extract no less
than five examples of the usage of various types of Arabic eloquence (some of which
cannot even be explained in English!).

For example, the primary meaning of the verb ishtha'ala which is used in the verse is to
express the sparks that are emitted by a fire. Therefore, Zakariyyah u is comparing the
whiteness of his hair to the sparks that emit from a fire, an example of one type of
metaphor.

Also, the verse translates as, '... (my) head sparks...', thus attributing the sparking effect,
not to the hair where it occurs, but to the place and origin of that hair (the head), thus
accentuating the severity of his old age. This phrase also gives the impression that the
sparks are occurring from many places, thus indicating that, not only are his hairs white,
but these white streaks are to be found all over his head.

In essence, this phrase of only three words conveys the image of Zakariyyah u's old age
in such graphic detail that the English equivalent would require a few paragraphs of text!
Of course, all such eloquence is completely lost in translation.

They have not studied rhetoric. To really understand the Miracle of the Holy
Quraan takes many years of serious study. People forget that the Arabs at the time of
the Holy Quraan had reached the pinnacle of language. Every people have a period,
where the language is the highest. In Greek it was at the time of Homer[1]. Nobody
has been able to replicate the eloquence of Greek in this period. The English language
reached its peak in the Elizabethan Period[2]. Nobody has been able to reach the
level of the language of the great playwrights and poets of the late 16 th and early 17th
century. This is a fact of the English language admitted by any English Professor. The
same is true for the Arabic. At the time of the 7th century, the Arabs had reached their
pinnacle of language, therefore the great poets of the Arabian Peninsula, either they had
just died, at the time the Holy Prophet Muhammad e arrived or a few of them were still
alive. When the Holy Prophet e brought the Holy Quraan they were unable to
imitate the Holy Quraan. The other Arabs, who were eloquent by their nature,
saying poetry off hand and give an impromptu talk with great eloquence were
confounded by the Holy Quraan for it was neither poetry nor prose and did not fit into
any of the categories of language they were aware of. Yet they recognized in it a
phenomenon that they had not seen. If you take any language and write something in
it, a master of rhetoric can come and improve on it. However it reaches a point beyond
which you cannot improve on the language. If you look at the statement in English:
To be or not to be, that is the
question

One cannot improve on the language eloquent of making that statement. The
soliloquies[3] of Shakespeare you cant improve on them if you try your best. There are
lines in Shakespeare, considered weak lines that can be improved on. Every poet in

Jahilliyya had weak lines that could be improved upon. The critics of poetry point out
weak lines and explain why is weak. But, Abu Bakr al-Baqillani[4] went through
the entire Holy Quraan and showed how nothing in the Holy Quraan can be
improved upon in its language. When talking about the Attributes and Qualities of
Allah Y, you cannot improve upon The Verse of the Throne (Ayatul Qursi). If you take
a Verse of Blame or Censure like in Sura Lahab;




You cannot improve on it or say it in a better way in the Arabic language.

The point is that, when the Holy Quraan came, the Arabs, they knew it was a
miraculous (mujiz) but when they went to the Ajam what did they have to bring
them. Tell a westerner the Holy Quraan is a miracle and he will ask whats miraculous
about it. There are people who have read the translation of the Holy Quraan and
were confused. They need to be told that it cannot be translated and still remain the
Holy Quraan. Yet let them listen to a beautiful recitation and their hearts will be
moved. One can hear the rhythm and sounds and realize that these cannot be
translated. Some word in Arabic carry such depth of meaning that they cannot be
translated and only a master in the language can even approximate the meaning. You
cant convince any English speaker that the Holy Quraan is a miracle from Allah Y
based on English translation. They may get something out of the translation but not a
moving response.

The thing that the non-Arabs responded to was the Holy Prophet Muhammad e.
Therefore wherever you go in the non-Arab world, there is an immense love of the
Messenger of Allah e. Go to Pakistan, India, Turkey, Indonesia or Malaysia and you
will see that there is an immense love for the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. According
to our tradition, you have to have some degree of knowledge before you can speak of
Allah Y and the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. The reason is obvious. The people of the
Indo-Pak Subcontinent have a proverb:
Neem hakim katra-e jaan
Neem Mullah katra-e Iman
An incompetent doctor is dangerous to your physical health
But an incompetent scholar is dangerous for the soul

In other words if you go to a physician, who doesnt know medicine; he read some
books about how to perform surgery and you go to him and put your life into his hands,
then you are a fool. That person will do more harm than good. So! The soul is infinitely

more important and infinitely means exactly what it means because the body dies but
the soul does not. The soul is infinitely more important than the body. So putting your
soul in the hands of ignorant people or half educated people is extremely dangerous
and will lead to untold harm to your heart and possibly to your future life. You have a
responsibility. The Shamail of Imam Tirmidhi [5], which is a book about the Holy
Prophet Muhammad es noble qualities and characteristics; he ends that book with a
statement by ibn Sireen[6] t, in which he says:
Inna hazal amra deen
This affair is about your relationship with your Lord
Fal yanzur ahadakum ammay yakuz deena
So let one of you think deeply about the one he is taking his religion from

Unfortunately the popular current trend is that, the only prerequisite for speaking
about religion is that you speak English or the local language. We wont allow this in
any other subject. You wont have a professor of mathematics giving a lecture on the
human heart, anatomy and physiology. You wont have somebody whose degree is on
cardiology giving a lecture on economics. Its simply not how things work because
human knowledge by its nature is very vast. It takes time to acquire expertise in any
subject under the sun. Therefore people study specific things, inspired by Allah Y to do
so, so that knowledge proceeds.

Knowledge of the deen is the most important of all knowledges. We have stopped
reflecting on how serious a crisis we are in. We have thousands of Khutbahs given by
incompetent people, who read books purchased or acquired otherwise. Even if the
book is in Arabic, read by one born in an Arab country, speaking Arabic doesnt
mean they really know Arabic. In the same way, you have English speaking people who
if asked to explain a poem by Shakespeare or Robert Frost, which is not that difficult;
most will not be able to do so since they are not trained in literature and the intricacies
of the English language. There is a difference between principle and principal.

In the Arab world, because somebody speaks Arabic they think they can go into
books written a thousand years ago and derive the meanings without seriously
studying. They think that they can read the Holy Quraan and because it sounds like
words we use they can translate its meaning. Let me present an example.
Allah Y says in the Holy Quraan in the 93rd Sura, ad-Dhuha, verse 7:

Nearly everybody who reads that thinks


wajada here means He found.
Allah Y doesnt find. He is not looking for anything. Finding implies that you dont
know where something is and then you go after it and look at it. [Some Arab speakers
like Egyptians, due to their local usage will assume it means find]. It doesnt mean that!
All of the commentators are in agreement that it means taalima. Alima hu daala!

Even the word


daal doesnt mean astray according to the mufassiroon
If you havent studied Arabic with teachers [who have proper (aqaaid and ishq)]

seriously (then you wont be blessed to know) that


language means to most Arabs, astray. [So they translate]:

daal in the Arabic

And He knew you were astray and guided you

(Asgagfirullah!)

daal means also that somebody is completely enamored [captivated and


fascinated to the level of loss of consciousness of anything else]. in love; wandering
around in a state of love. Thats one of the meanings! There are many interpretations of
that verse.

So people think that they can pick these books up, read them and come to conclusions
and then go and preach them to others without, studying with people. Nobody in the
history of Islam has accepted this. The word for hadith that are taken without teachers
are called wijaada and most of the Ulama are in rejection of using hadith that you
did not take from a teacher. But people buy their own Sahih Bukhari and Muslim
and they go and start telling people what al-Bukhari and Muslim said. And; there are
things in there that will lead you astray. I guarantee you that there are things (in there)
that will completely lead you astray. Thats not my statement, thats ibn Uyaina [7] one
of the greatest Muhadditheen in the history of Islam; who said:
The hadith are sources of deviation for anyone who takes them from other
than their people

Even Allah Y says in the Holy Quraan in the 2nd Sura, al-Baqara in verse 26:





By it (the Holy Quraan ) He causes many to stray, and many He leads into the right
path

So what ensures you that you stay on the right path? By staying with the rightly
guided scholars! And who are those rightly guided scholars? We know who they are.

But even they make mistakes. So how do you know when they are making a mistake
or not? From scholars that preceded them. With any profession or artisan skill you
want a competent person to accomplish the task. If people dont do what they do well,
you and I suffer the consequences of their poor labor. Similarly you dont want a
scholar who doesnt spend all of his time making sure that he gets right what hes
teaching the people. This relates to your relationship with God. It doesnt relate to
whether your bread is under baked or whether the cabinet is well made or not. Its
not even as dangerous as whether the surgeon is as good as he claims. Because this is
about your soul and ultimately your Imaan! We are living in the Age of
Pamphleteering. An age of weekend Muftis! People who should not be giving Khutba,
are giving sermons. People listen to deviant scholars, astray and dont know what
theyre talking about in Jumas, confusing some and angering those who know its not
true. Yet those who know have the adab to sit through something completely
incorrect and wrong. The majority of people are called ahle sunnah wa jamaah and
we hold certain beliefs that where in agreement upon. This is called Normative Islam.
Every religion that is considered universal has that aspect to it. We have a creed (aqaid)
what the majority follow. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e said:
Alaikum bi as-sawad al-azam
Be with the majority of people
For my Ummah will never agree on error and deviancy

We have something called ijma, jamoor, muttafaq alai. This refers to the majority
agreement in the scholarship of our great scholars who protected this religion. The
Holy Prophet Muhammad e said that:
Those in every generation that carry this knowledge will be upright and just people

Truth is handed over from person to person; its not taken from books. Every book
studied with a true scholar, is a book passed down a chain of transmission or one was
given permission to study and teach it, since the Spiritual Masters (shuyukh) recognized
ones ability to read independently. But, initially one has to study and be linked to
accomplished, spiritually linked scholars. People think that they can pick up books, read
them and come to conclusions and then go and preach them to others without, studying
under Spiritual Masters (shuyukh). Nobody in the history of Islam has accepted this. The
word for hadith that are taken without teachers, authorised to transmit, are called
wijaada and most of the Ulama are in rejection of using hadith that you did not take
from a teacher. People buy their own Sahih Bukhari and Muslim and they go and start
telling people what al-Bukhari and Muslim said. There are things mentioned there that
will lead you astray. I guarantee you that there are things mentioned in there, and if
misunderstood, it will completely lead you astray. Thats not my statement, thats ibn
Uyaina one of the greatest Muhadditheen in the history of Islam; who said:
The hadith are sources of deviation for anyone who takes them from other than their
people

If somebody reads the following in his Muhsin Khan version of Sahih al-Bukhari (
) :
Narrated Abu Huraira: Allahs Apostle e said, "Allah curses the thief who steals an egg
(or a helmet) for which his hand is to be cut off, or steals a rope, for which his hand is to
be cut off." (Bukhari)
On reading this one concludes that if you steal an egg you get your hand cut off then
one is mistaken for none of the fuqaha took that hadith. Therefore Ibn 'Abdul-Barr, Yusuf
bin 'Abdullah , in the 6th century, a man who memorized 100 000 hadith by heart (Hafidh
al-Magrib), who wrote a 30 volume book on Maliki fiqh, and a 20 volume book on the
Muwatta of Imam Maalik, complained of his age saying:
What a terrible time I am living in, these people memorize hadith, and
they dont study fiqh
The problem with literacy is that it empowers ignorant people. There are proverbs like,
A Little Education Is a Dangerous Thing and another Beware Of the One Book Man.
This is about fundamentalist Christians that only learn the Bible. Thats all the Kharijites
(Khawrij) knew, they only knew the Holy Quraan; not knowing the sunnah and
books of the fuqaha.

To ensure that one stays on the right path one has to be linked to the rightly guided
scholars and shuyukh! There are books that can be studied at home. Riyadh as-Saaliheen
(The Gardens of the Righteous) was written for common people, thus one wont find
difficult hadith in them. The majority of hadith is to rectify character. Even the Holy
Quraan is read for to acquire The Theology of Servitude or taabbud which literally
means to make oneself a slave. It is not to derive rulings (ahkaam). Thats not our
business. Allah Y says in the Holy Quraan in the 16th Sura, an-Nahl (The Bee) in verse
43:



Ask the people of dhikr (those whose hearts are constantly engaged in the
remembrance of Allah Y) when you dont know

Its an obligation to consult people of whose hearts are constantly engaged in the
. These are people authorized through a chain of
remembrance of Allah Y

transmission called silsilah. There are some (like Deobandis) who claim to follow Sufi
chains but they have lost the true aqaid whilst there are some who have proper aqaaid but
dont know the true Sufi path. The latter are the lesser of the two evils since belief
(aqaid) is most important. You cannot take knowledge that has any import or weight
in this world; whether medicine or engineering from books, you have to study under
qualified teachers. At the time of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e, out of the tens of
thousands of Sahaba, only seven people in the whole of Madinah gave fatwa. Asking

questions about the Holy Prophet Muhammad e, like where his parents are in the next
world and what is his quality of life after physical demise and drawing negative
conclusions is a fatwa. This relates to the belief (aqidah) of the Muslims. There are three
acceptable creeds in the tradition of Islam. The Ashariyya: the creed of Imam atTahawi t, of the ahe sunnah wa jamaah; then the creed of Abul Hassan al-Ashari of the
ahe sunnah wa jamaah and also Abu Manthur al-Mathuridi t. The overwhelming
majority of the scholars of our Ummah after the fourth century are in agreement on this
that the Holy Prophet Muhammad e has a functioning life after his physical passing.

So those that suddenly, come as scholars and change what was known and practiced
for the last 1000 years, in this enlightened period claiming they have discovered the
true Islam are actually stating that for a 1000 years the Ummah was in darkness,
enveloped in the stupidity of misguided scholars are actually giving a bad opinion
about Allah Y!

There are misguided people in this strange modern world who continuously attack and
seek to demolish the spiritual heart of the religious way of life. They have already
demolished the spiritual heart of Christianity, Judaism, Hinduism and Buddhism and are
now targeting Islam. They vilify authentic Sufi Scholars like Maulana Dr. Fazlur Rahman
Ansari t, his teacher Maulana Abdul Aleem Siddiqui t and his teacher Maulana Ahmad
Rida Khan t falsely accusing them of being profoundly misguided to the end of engaging
in acts of shirk.

They are people who have effectively joined the ranks of those enemies of Islam who
have effectively joined the ranks of those enemies of Islam who are waging a war on
Islam and Muslims around the world. They themselves are unaware that they have
become instruments in the hans of those who dismantled the political system of Islam by
closing down the Caliphate on the 3 March 1924. By handing over the Spiritual
Heartland of Islam to the Saudi Family and hence closed down the effective usage of our
international parliament, the Hajj. Allah Y speaks of them in the Holy Quraan, which has
been mistranslated by most modern translators even Yusuf Ali and Maulana Thanvi. Allah
Y speaks in the 5th Sura al-Maida in verse 51(some versions verse 54) of the Holy
Quraan and He Y says:

O You! Who have faith in Allah Y

Do not (this is a command from Him who created us from a drop of sperm) take Jews
and Christians as your friends and allies

Is Allah Y speaking about all Jews and all Christians or is He speaking about some Jews
and some Christians? The Holy Quraan answers that question. There are many verses of
the Holy Quraan which commit us to establish fraternal relations with Jews and
Christians. A Muslim man can even marry a Christian woman for the Holy Quraan
permits that (5:5). So very clearly this verse of the Holy Quraan is speaking of some
Jews and some Christians and not all Jews and all Christians. So which Jews and which
Christians with whom it is prohibited for us to maintain friendly ties with; to establish
alliance with? The verse goes on to answer that question:


Which means; and listen carefully:
Do not take such Jews and such Christians as your friends and allies who themselves
are friends and allies of each other

The Lord of the Heavens and the Earth is speaking!




Whosoever amongst you

Whether you be a carpenter, taxi-driver or whatever; it doesnt matter. Whosoever


amongst you establishes friendly relations or alliance with such Jews and Christians will
no longer be part of the Muslim World. You have now joined them, youre part of them;
not us. When you die and the angel comes to take your soul at that time you will have it
confirmed, Youre not a Muslim.







You that turns to them (for friendship) is of them








Surely Allah Y does not provide guidance for a people who commit such an atrocious
act of evil and wrongdoing

But, Jews and Christians were never friends of each other. Never in history! In fact the
Christians accused the Jews of having committed the ultimate crime of killing god,
himself. To kill god himself is the ultimate crime. They crucified the lord. As a

consequence there was always animosity; hatred and hostility between Christians and
Jews. So this verse of the Holy Quraan revealed 1400 years ago in the desert of Arabia
anticipates a day that would come in history when there would be a strange; baffling;
puzzling; mysterious and mystifying friendship between Christians and Jews through
which a Christian Jewish alliance would emerge. 1400 years ago, Allah Y is saying that
this would happen and when it happens youd better be careful; because if you allow
yourself to maintain friendly ties with them your Islam is gone.

Has that alliance come into being as yet? Yes! ( Whilst we where indulging in frivolities ) a
mysterious Christian Jewish alliance emerged in Europe. Whilst we were studying our
economics and politics in university a mysterious Christian Jewish alliance emerged. It is
that Christian Jewish alliance that delivered to the world Modern Western Civilization. It
is that Christian Jewish alliance which today rules and dominates the world; gave to the
world the United Nations Organization; Bretton Woods [8]; the International Monetary
Fund and todays so-called International Monetary System. If you join them; if you
become a part of them; if you allow yourself to become subservient to them; if you
establish friendly ties with them and become part of that alliance and part of that system;
then youve lost your Islam. He e said on the day, when we shall be raised to life again
from the grave, to face judgment, it will be very hot, people will be very thirsty, they
would want water and the followers of the Prophet e, would go to him and he would be
standing by this spring of al-Kauthar, [The 108th Sura, al-Kauthar, Verse 1]
{1}

A spring of water! And he would be giving us water to drink to quench our thirst, but
there would be some, when they go to him for water, he would refuse to give them water;
and they would say, O Messenger of Allah e! We are Muslims why are you not giving us
water; we are Muslims and he e would say, You changed the religion after I left, so no
water for you. Indeed he gave an even greater warning than that; he e prophesized[9],
He says, you going to do it! What? Instead of following me, Muhammad e you will
abandon me and you will follow those that came before you; you will follow them step
by step, those who came before you, to such an extent that if they were to go down into a
lizards hole, you will also go down into the lizards hole. So we asked, O Messenger of
Allah Y! Who are you referring to, those who came before us; are you referring to Jews
and Christians? He said, Who else?

So, one day the Jewish Christian world is going to exert such a powerful influence over
the Muslims that we will effectively abandon Muhammad e and instead of following him
we will be following them. And we follow them so slavishly that even if they were to go
down into a lizards hole we will go down into the lizards hole with them. Are we
also in the lizards hole?

He prophesized something worse than that. He e said[10]:


[Hazrath Ali e reports that the Holy Prophet Muhammad e said]





There will come a time when nothing will remain of Islam but the name
The religion is gone! All that remains is this shell. The rice grain gone. All that remains is
.the husk. He e said that time will come









And that time will certainly come when nothing will remain of the
Quraan except the pages that are mechanically read
Yes! No one goes to the Quraan for the guidance that it has. Therefore no one follows
.that guidance that is in the Quraan



[When that time comes when nothing remains of Islam but the name and nothing remains
of the Quraan but the traces of the writing mechanically read] At that time he e said:
The Masajid will be grand structures
Long time it was a roof when rainfall used to leak, and used to be mud walls; but When
that time comes when nothing remains of Islam but the name
The Masajid will be grand structures
Multi-million rand buildings, iron and steel:
But devoid of guidance

The religious scholars who support and are embraced by such a blind
people;
who are holding on to nothing but the rice husk
Those Ulama would be the worst people [creatures] beneath the sky
From them will emerge that which will constitute fitna[11] for the
people
Tests and trials! Corrupt people. They will become the centers of fitna for the people. The
house burning down and the scholars of Islam dont even know that and they lecturing
long, long, pretty, pretty lectures. Wah wah! But their house burning down and they cant
even see their house burning down. Or they know their house burning down but they
afraid to say it. .. they will be the worst people beneath the skies






If you think that situation is bad; listen to this one. It is the Day of Judgment; the hadith is
in Sahih Bukhari- it is repeated four times in Sahih Bukhari by four different companions
of the Prophet e. So it is known as mutawatir hadith. When a hadith comes from only
one source it is known as ahad but when it is repeated by several companions it is called
:mutawatir. This is mutawatir
On the Last Day, the Day of Judgment Allah Y addresses Adam u and he says to Adam
u separate the people for the hell-fire. Adam u asks, How many are there O Allah Y .
Allah Y replies and he says, out of every 1000 take 999 for the hell-fire. The
companions of the Prophet e were terrified. But then he smiled at them and he said,
.Bushra lakum (good news for you). The one for jannah will be from you

Meaning, someone who truly follows the Prophet e! Someone who holds on regardless
of the price he may have to pay. That one is for heaven. But he e went on to say that the
999 would all be the people of Gog and Magog. We live in times now when most people
including molvis and muftis studying in ulooms sponsored by petro- dollars dont know
what the truth is anymore. Our books, including classical Islamic texts are being
manipulated. Books reprinted i.e. later editions; have things removed from it because the
publishing house was purchased by a certain sect that didnt want those ideas
disseminated in the Ummah, so people dont even realize, that their books are being
manipulated. The tradition of Islam is being changed in computers, by being deleted and
retype-set. Refer to the following website:
http://www.masud.co.uk/ISLAM/nuh/masudq3.htm

This long essay had to precede the answer.

Human Personality and its Functions:


According to the Holy Quraan, humanity emerged in Creation primarily in the
transcendental dimension of existence. Allah Y says in the 2nd Sura, al- Baqara in verse
35:




O


We (God) said: O Adam! Dwell you and your wife in the Garden; and eat of the
bountiful things therein as you wish; but approach not this tree, or else you run into
harm and transgression.

At that stage of existence itself, they possessed not only the spiritual but also the rational
and the aesthetical dimensions of personality. The spiritual dimension was there because
of the very fact of the transcendental nature of their existence. When man fell victim to
the Devils Deception only after that they appeared in the physical world, which is spatiotemporal, as physical and moral beings.
1. The real human personality is spiritual in nature. Besides 2:35, this fact is also
corroborated by the following verse, which speaks, not only of the existence of all human
beingsfrom the first to the lastat the dawn of Creation, but also of the
possession of Consciousnessself-consciousness as well as consciousness of the
Personality of Godand hence of personality, which is based and built up on conscious,
appreciative and non mechanical response to other personality or personalities. Allah Y
says in the 7th Sura, al- Aaraf in verse 172:







And recall that time (at the dawn of Creation and in the world of spirits) when your
Lord took from the children of Adam10 their posterity from their back[12], and made
them testify as to themselves saying: am I not your Lord? They said: Yes we
testify12. (Thus was the Covenant of Monotheism inscribed on every human Soul).
That was lest you should say on the Day of Resurrection: verily of this we have been
unaware.

Thus, because this event relates to the transcendental world and conditions of
transcendental existence, the transcendental or spiritual nature of the original, i.e., the
real, human personality is thereby established. This fact is further affirmed by the
following verses: Allah Y says in the 17th Sura, al-Israa in verse 85:








And they ask you regarding the (human) Soul. Say: the Soul proceeds from my
Lords Amr, or, Command, created by Him, like other things); and of knowledge you
have been vouchsafed but little.(Therefore, in spite of its intangibility, or non-physical
character, do not doubt its reality).

2. The earthly existence of every human being commences when the human Soul, whose
original abode is the transcendental world, projects itself into spatio-temporal dimensions
and takes on the physical form, even as the personalities of Adam and Eve were projected
into the material world. Allah Y says in the 2nd Sura, al-Baqarah in verse 36:




Then Satan caused them both (i.e., Adam and Eve) to deflect there from and got
them expelled from that in which they had been. We (God) said: Get you down all
(i.e., let entire humanity commence its descent from the then transcendental stage
towards the spatiotemporal, or, the physical, stage of existence),[13] with the spirit
of clash between yourselves (that being the condition of all struggle, including the
moral). On earth (where you will stay with physical qualities required for a physical
environment) will be your dwelling place andprovision for a time (i.e., for the duration
of each individuals earthly sojourn.)

3. Then, the human Soul, while retaining its transcendental dimension, viz., function and
activity, and centered in devotion to its Source of Existence and Capabilities, namely,
God, of Whom it is the vicegerent (2:30), functions in four other dimensions also :
namely, physical, rational, moral and aesthetical.
4. Thus: the spiritual, the physical, the rational, the moral and the aesthetical constitute
the five dimensions of human personality, and activity relating to all these five should be
pursued in a balanced and integrated manner, in order that the human personality may
evolve and function in a healthy form on the basis of healthy activity .

Duties to the Holy Prophet Muhammad (the Divinely-Blessed) originate, like the duties
to God, in the Islamic Article of Faith itself; and they have been laid down by the
Quraan in the interest of the Muslims themselves, because :
Firstly, he alone is the Leader who is to be followed unconditionally. Thus the bond of
loyalty to him is the bond of integrity of the Islamic world-community.
[In that connection, it is necessary to emphasize that the bond of loyalty to the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e resides in absolute allegiance to him, which means that the
association of anyone else in that allegiance as a condition of faith in Islamin terms of
conferring upon anyone, or accepting anyones claim to, divinely-bestowed Authority, on
the basis of prophetic status or any status akin to it, in any sense whatsoever, is disbelief
in the Prophets status, and is regarded as disbelief in Islam itself, and that in spite of
otherwise absolute allegiance to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e expels a person from
the fold of Islam in the same way as when he associates anyone in any manner in the
Godhood of Allah.]
Secondly, he is the Model of Perfection whom every Muslim is under obligation to
imitate for advancement in his spiritual and moral life. But to imitate him consequentially
is not possible without practicing love and respect for him, which has been prescribed as
duty.
Thirdly, he is the Medium through whom Divine Grace flows[14] to his followers in
respect of their spiritual and moral purification. Allah Y says in the62nd Sura, al-Jumuah,
in verses 3-4:

{4}

As well as (to confer all these benefits upon) others of them, who have not
already joined them: And He is exalted in Might, Wise. That is Allah's grace; He
grants it to whom He pleases, and Allah is the Lord of mighty grace.

Benefit can only be conferred by a living Prophet thus these facts necessitate the
maintenance of a constant dutiful attitude in terms of love and respect for him.

Let's explain the status of the Holy Prophet


Muhammad e from the Holy Qur'aan.
According to the Holy Quraan, the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e has a multi-dimensional status. The
one aspect of his personality is universal and the

other is mundane (earthly). Allah Y says in the Holy


Qur'aan, in the 21st Sura, al Ambiya, Verse 107:



(O! Prophet!)I have not sent you but as a mercy to the universe

The universe! All the worlds! This is beyond this


earth and humanity. This is called the cosmic or
universal level. He is the mercy for the entire
creation of Allah Y i.e. the universe.
His earthly status is, as Allah Y says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the 18th Sura, al-Kahf in
Verse 110:




O! Prophet! Proclaim to the people that I am nothing more than a human being,
Mislukum'.

Many people have stumbled on this verse because this word Mislukum can be translated
in two ways. One translation leads to disbelief (kufr) whilst the other translation is the
translation of Faith (imaan). It has been translated by some as being like you This is
the translation on the basis of kufr. This statement is the greatest falsehood against the
Holy Qur'aan and Hadith and is blasphemous against the personality of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e. Blasphemy leads a person to kufr. No human being is like the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e , What do they mean when they translate it in this ugly fashion?
Like whom? Who has that standard of piety and status that he can be likened to the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e ? The implication of the verse is to emphasize the humanity of
the Holy Prophet e so that Muslims do not fall prey, like others have, in view of his great
qualities and miraculous powers that Allah Y has given him. They may not fall into the
misconception that he is God or Son of God like others have fallen before them. It is his
divinity that is being denied here, not that he is like us. He is a human being - We are
human beings. Students of science and physics know that charcoal is pure carbon and
diamond is also pure carbon. It is only the frequency of molecules of the electronic
particles of the diamond that makes one a diamond and the other charcoal. Charcoal is
black whilst diamond is luminous. Medicinally charcoal when eaten expels stomach
gasses whilst diamond when eaten, will kill one. In Monetary value a truckload of
charcoal cannot compare to a little diamond. Although both are carbon there is a world of
difference between them. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e is human being and we are
human beings, but he is diamond and we are charcoal. Although, basically, both are the
same their laws of existence, value and worth are worlds apart. Although I and you and

the Holy Prophet Muhammad e are human beings, there is a world of difference in point
of status, constitution of personality and powers. This is the status with regard to the
temporal or mortal world in which we live. Remember Allah has said in the Holy
Quraan in the 49th Sura, al-Hujeraat, Verse 2:


O Believers do not raise your voices above the pitch of the voice of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e and do not talk with him in the fashion, which you speak amongst
yourselves. If you make even this slight unconscious mistake, all your virtuous acts
[prayer (salaah), fasting, pilgrimage (hajj), alms (zakaat), and every act of virtue]
will be annulled totally and you will not even know it.

What is this status? You will forgive any insult done to you but you will never forgive
any insult done to your beloved. This is the law of love. If for a single error, of
disrespect to Allah Ys beloved, every act of virtue is annulled, how much must Allah Y
love him? He does not even give the blasphemer, the divine help (Taufiq) to realise he
has sinned, thus the door of repentance remains closed. Beware of this.

What are Muslims being taught? They have lost the


source of grace and they feel that they can get grace
from Allah Y. The source of grace as established by
Allah Y is only the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. There
is no other source.

Universal/ cosmic status.


I refer you to what Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the
21st Sura, al-Ambiya Verse 107:

O Holy Prophet Muhammad e ! I Have not sent thee but as a mercy unto the entire
universe

And in another verse Allah Y says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the 5th Sura, al- Maida, Verse
15:







Verily there has come unto you a light and a clear book....

The
here is the
of conjunction, the light
refers to something different and
the book is something different. There is a difference of opinion amongst the
commentators, some say ' light ' herein refers to the Holy Prophet e others say that it does
not, but only to the guidance he has brought. Here again the same problem comes in, one
thinks according to ones understanding or level of comprehension'. However the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e is commissioned by God to explain every intricate verse of the
Holy Qur'aan, and Allah Y ) says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the 16th Sura, an-Nahl, Verse 44:








(O Holy Prophet e With clear proofs and writings; and We have revealed unto thee the
Remembrance that thou may explain to mankind that which hath been
revealed for them, and that haply they may reflect.

Here comes in hadith as the authority. Let us ask the Holy Prophet e what is the

reference to the word


here. In the Hadith quoted on the authority of Muhaddith '
abd ar Razzaq, the eminent fore runner of Imam Bukhari and quoted by Moulana Ashraf
Ali Thanvi one of the very eminent ulama of Deoband in his book Nashrut teeb fi zikre
Habeeb. Hazrath Jabir bin Abdullah al-Ansari t reports that the Holy Prophet Muhammad
e informed him that:

The first thing which Allah created was my light, [and every other creation was created
from my light.]"
This Hadith compels us to side with those commentators who say that nur here refers to
the Holy Prophet Muhammad e It has been the consensus of Muslim belief which was
challenged only in this period of Muslim decay and degeneration, under the impact of
modern materialism, that the Holy Prophet Muhammad e is the center of creation, that

Allah Y created the light of the Holy Prophet e and from that light He created the whole
universe.

According to another Hadith:








I exist because of the Light of Allah Y and all existence comes into existence
due to my light

Allah Y is indivisible, so the meaning in the Hadith is due to (sababbiya), NOT FROM
the light of Allah Y, but BECAUSE OF the light of Allah Y.

The Qur'aan also bears testimony to this that the Holy Prophet Muhammad e is the first
of creation, when it explicitly affirms this fact, when it says in the 6 th Sura al- Anaam,
Verse 163:


" I am the first among Muslims .

Muslim here refers to the first thing or being to


submit to the will of Allah Y and not the misuse it
has been put to in these days of bickering. Muslim
means he or she that submits his/her will entirely to
the will of God. In another verse Allah says in the 3rd
Sura, al-i- Imraan Verse 83:









Everything in the heaven and earth is Muslim

In the light of the Holy Quraan what would ' I am the first among the Muslims mean? It
means that the first being or creation to be created by Allah Y is the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e. Science bears testimony to this fact today. Modern science says that this
entire universe started as a point of light [15] in intense motion. This point of light
projected itself on the tape of extension and became space and projected itself on the tape
of duration and became time. The experiment of physical analysis pursued on the
principle of heat, by raising temperature and disintegrating a particular thing into its
constituent particles prove that the essence of all matter is light. [Refer to Hubert Reeves,
the Canadian Astro-physicist. Read his light radiation theory]. The essential human being

therefore is a space less and timeless being. (ar Ruh - the essence al Asl). All matter is
therefore ultimately anti-matter and all the properties of matter ultimately cease to exist,
since the essential being was created in the transcendental world called al Jannah. When
Allah willed the universe to exist He said, Be Muhammad (kun Muhammadah). Allah Y
spoke the word only once, but from this kun everything took place and takes place in its
time, every moment. This kun is not repeated, but it was in the whole universe from the
beginning, and it is forever. Therefore the real Muhammad e is the foundation of the
universe and all creation came through him. When our pious ancestors taught that the
Holy Prophet Muhammad e is the medium or wasila between this world and Allah Y How can it be said that they were teaching wrongly? What else is there that links this
universe with Allah Y except Allah's first creation: the nure Muhammadi? Allah Y is all
Mighty and all Powerful, He does not need any wasilah, but He has made a universe that
is in need. The angels are intermediaries, mediating between Creator and creation,
performing functions for Allah Y, and when it is said that the highest in Allah Ys creation
is the intermediary why do we not accept. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e is the
intermediary for forgiveness also according to the Quraan in the 4th Sura al-Nisaa:
Verse 64:

If these people who transgress the divine laws and damage their personalities, come
to thee O Prophet! And they seek the forgiveness of Allah and if the Prophet also
seeks forgiveness for them most surely they will find Allah the Acceptor Of
Repentance and Bestower Of Mercy.'

This verse of the Holy Quraan is for all times. The Question arises, how do I approach
the Holy Prophet Muhammad e today? Some people say go to Madinah the Illuminated!
This would imply that forgiveness is only for the rich. If we say the verse was only for
the companions then we are denying the Qur'aan is for all times. People who say the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e is only hayaat or living in Madinah the Illuminated seem to be
very ignorant about the constitution of human life and the meaning of death. If one means
by the Holy Prophet Muhammad e his bodily constitution that lies buried in Madinah,
then this is a childish view. Madinah the Illuminated has an added affinity because the
blessed body lies buried there but the essential Holy Prophet Muhammad e transcends
the limitations of space and time and thus, he is a living Prophet that is approachable
every where. When one approaches anyone, with a plea of help, one approaches with full
respect and humility. Thus our elders have taught, and rejected lately on the basis of
defective knowledge, that we should stand with full respect and humility and greet him
(salaam), and present our plea (dua). The word salaat in Arabic has over twenty five or
more meanings, amongst these are prayer (salaah), nearness (qurbiyat) and greeting.
Thus salatu salaam means approach and greet. The Arabic word of yusalloona is derived
from the root word of salaat. Taken in its original form it means worship or dua,
prayer. In this context it also signifies a sense of nearness and proximity, a consequence
of people gathering in mosques for prayers. This is a physical and spiritual congregation.
This theme of connection and nearness can also be seen in other derivatives of the word
salaat:

* mussalee: the runner up in a horse race since he is the companion of the winner, the
closest to him than any other
* salaa: the middle part of the human body which joins the upper and lower limbs
together
* salayah: a flat stone on which condiments are added together and ground with a
muller
* miswalah: a broom that collects segments of dust
In short all of the derivatives of salat convey the meaning of relation, nearness,
togetherness and connection. Yusalloona creates a beautiful imagery of Allah blessing the
Holy Prophet Muhammad e with His proximity and close relation abolishing the
distances between them. Traditional concepts of separation vanish away and the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e gradually rises up to the stages of Divine proximity. This process
continues and will continue forever. Moreover, it is not only Allah Y who is pleased with
His servants sending salutations upon the Holy Prophet e but that Allah Y is pleased with
the pleasure of His beloved Holy Prophet Muhammad e . When Muslims send blessings
upon the Holy Prophet Muhammad e they do so with humility, modesty and reverent
respect. Salat is also taken to mean the heat of fire (the fire of extreme love and
reverence) which straightens the crookedness of wooden sticks. In the same manner
yusalloona signifies a worshipper wanting correction of his inner and outer self by
prayers and other worships. Believers are also being asked to salute, sallimoo the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e . The Arabic word of sallimoo is derived from the word salam,
meaning peace. It is not sufficient just to send durood (ask Allah Y to bless him) upon the
Prophet Holy Prophet Muhammad e but to salute him too, acknowledging his high rank
and status. A salute is normally given to a person of seniority, a leader or a statesman. The
living Holy Prophet Muhammad e is deemed by Allah Y to be the worthiest of all those
who deserve to be saluted. One of the Companions, Ibn Abbas t comments that the
command of salat and salam is the magnification of Divine remembrance. Allah Y
continues to arrange such conditions as to pave the way for the exaltation and
dissemination of the Holy Prophet es dignity, excellent qualities and matchless lifestyle.

We do this in attahiyat? Form a direct contact with him and present ones petition to him.
If he feels we are fit then he will plea for us to Allah Y. Is Allah Y an impersonal force?
We greet A LIVING Prophet in salaah. In attahiyaat one greets the Holy Prophet e with
salaam. Imam Ghazali has stated[16] that at this point, one should BELIEVE the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e IS present and near (wayzur fi qalbika fi shakhsi qareeb).
Therefore those who have aqidah that the Holy Prophet e is Haazir and Naazir (present
and seeing) will be certain of a reply to this greeting. This actually is the point of
acceptance of Salaah. That which is acceptable to the Holy Prophet e is acceptable to
Allah Y . This method of asking Allah Y, by praising and greeting His beloved, ensures
the flow of Allah's mercy on the worshipper.

I draw your attention to a Hadith in the collection of Ahmad bin Hamnbal as reported by
Abu Hurraira t:
A companion of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e , Hazrath Ubayy ibn Kab t was
performing the compulsory (farz) salaah, not the optional (nafil) salaah, mind you. The
Holy Prophet e called him. He did not respond to the call immediately since he was
busy reading his compulsory Prayer (Farz Salaah). He quickly concluded his prayer and
came to the door. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e asked him why he did not
immediately respond to his call. He explained that at the time he was busy reading his
Compulsory Prayer (Farz Salaah). The Holy Prophet e asked him did he not hear the
Quraanic injunction in the 8th Sura, al-Anfaal, Verse 24:




O ye who believe! Respond immediately to Allah and His Messenger, when he calls
you

He had told the Holy Prophet e that he was pre-occupied in salaah, but the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e still read this verse. This implies that the Holy Prophet e meant, that
whatever state you were in it was incumbent on you to respond. Or else the Holy Prophet
e could have said, that since you were busy in salaah, and failed to respond then you
acted correctly. From this incident the four Imams of the schools of jurisprudence have
stated that, if any person is reading salaah, and the Holy Prophet Muhammad e calls
him, then it is compulsory (farz) on him to leave his salaah and respond immediately. If
he is in the standing posture (qiyaam) or prostration (sajda), immediately on hearing the
call of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e he must get up from whatever posture he is in
and immediately respond. Not that he must complete his salaah, but he should
immediately respond. There is agreement of all jurists on this point. A question arises
that after responding to the Holy Prophet e should he restart his salaah or read from
where he had left it? E.g. one had read two cycles (rakaat), and then the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e called. One responded, leaving the two remaining cycles that has to be
read and carried out whatever order the Holy Prophet Muhammad e had issued. Now
on returning should one restart salaah from the beginning or just continue from where
one had left? Imam Shafei t says that ones salaah does not break and he should continue
from where he left it, since attention to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e is attention to
Allah.
Firstly, note that after Allah Y and His Messenger are mentioned, the verse quoted
pronoun and verb in the next clause are singular: For the Holy Prophet Muhammad e
represents nothing but the will and intention of Allah.

Secondly, if any person is in salaah and the Holy Prophet Muhammad e calls him he
must leave his salaah and respond immediately.

Another status is that which is unknowable to us. The Quraan proclaims in the 33rd
Sura, al-Ahzab: Verse 45:

" I have sent the as a witness..."

Who else can be a witness except him who sees the


things upon which he stands witness? He is witness
that Allah Y exists; unless he has seen Allah Y he
cannot be witness. He is a witness that the universe
is infinite, heaven exists, angels etc. This status is
beyond our understanding. The Hadith is in the
Authentic Collection (Sihah), were he says,

Li ma alahi waqtun la yasa'ni fi him malakun muqarrabun wa la nabiyun


mursal
There is an aspect of my life when my personality is projected in that direction, then
I am with Allah and my time is with Him. It is at a level where no angel and no
Divine Messenger can even witness it.

The report which stands behind the saying of the Holy Prophet e is from his beloved wife
Hazrath Aisha Sidduiqa y who says:
One day I went into the room of the Holy Prophet e where he was
sitting. I went inside and I said, Salutations to you My Beloved (as
salaam mu alaikum - Ya Habibi.) The Holy Prophet e raised his
eyes towards her and asked, who are you? (Man anti). He is
asking his own beloved wife as to whom she was! She says she
replied, I am Aisha, daughter of Abu Bakr (Aisha binti Abu Bakr).
The Holy Prophet e said, who is Abu Bakr? (Man Abu Bakr). His
closest, beloved friend is Hazrath Abu Bakrt but he is asking, Who is
Abu Bakr? The Mother of the Believers says that she replied Abu

Bakr, the son of Kahafa (Abu Bakr ibn Kahafa). The Holy Prophet e
asked, Who is Kahafa? (Man Kahafa). Hazrath Aisha Sidduiqa y
says,I shivered and trembled and immediately left. She says that
when she met the Holy Prophet e again she said, Sir, do you
remember I met you at such and such a place at such and such an
hour? Then you asked me who am I? Startled! I replied that I am the
daughter of Abu Bakr and then you asked me man Abu Bakr why
did you ask me that? The Holy Prophet e replied,
Ya Aisha! Li ma alahe waqtun la yasowni fi him malakum,
mukarrabum wala nabiyun mursal
There is an aspect of my life when my personality is projected in that
direction then I am with AllahY and my time is with God. It is at a
level where no angel brought near and no Prophet sent as a Divine
Messenger could even witness it as to what it is. It transcends
everybody.
How can I explain this status of the Holy Prophet e? How could Hazrath Abu Bakr t? So
great, greatest among the Sahaba! How could Hazrath Ali t? Yet you see little, little
Molvi's, walking on their two legs, opening their mouths that the Holy Prophet e is just
like our elder brother. What are you talking about? He is just our elder brother. It is an
insult to human reason, it is an insult to the Holy Quraan, it is an insult to your Iman,
and it is to lay eggs at your feet. You cannot damage the Holy Prophet e and his status
but you are going to damage yourself. Beware of it!

Everything in this world is constantly in need of the "Light" of Alla>h Y.Nothing in


this world can survive without that radiation of Divine Light flowing into it. Unless the
proper connection between this universe and Alla>h Y remains, this universe will
vanish. Just as we use transformers to step the voltage down, Almighty Alla>h Y
created the "First transformer", the "heart" of the Holy Prophet e to link this world to
Alla>h Y. This status of Wasila was given to our the Holy Prophet Muhammad e
because he is the nucleus of the existence of the universe. Thus Alla>h Y says in the
Holy Qur'a>n regarding this universe in the 3rd Sura al-i-Imraan [The Family of
Imraan]: Verse 185:




The life of this world is but fleeting images.
Maulana Fazlur Rahman Ansari t translates the word mataal guroor as fleeting images.
Ibn Kathir t in his explication[17] (tafseer) of these words explains it as mean and
vanishing. Of course this world and all it contains is a projection of Alla>h Y saying
(kun Muhammada) Be Muhammad e. My love tells me that on the night of Mera>j
the projection of kun was withdrawn hence no images remained. The total personality of

the Holy Prophet Muhammad e was ushered into the Divine Presence and hence the
entire world ceased to exist. The universe resumed functioning as soon as he was ushered
back into it. The fact that we live in a functioning world is proof of the presence (haazir)
of the soul of the universe or (ar-Ru>h al-qayina>t). Therefore, unless we
understand the personality of the Holy Prophet e the events of the Mera>j would
remain inconceivable and dogmatic or we will doubt that the event occurred.

We know about different types of time: mechanical time, psychological time, biological
time, metaphysical time, serial time, plus time, minus time, zero time, etc. The nature of
minus time is such that if one travels in minus time that person actually reduces in age.
These are the teachings of the scientists. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e journeying
upwards through plus time and beyond brought him back to his original state of creation
i.e., nur. Similarly with light (nur) of which there are different types: alpha rays, beta
rays, gamma rays, x-rays, infra-red, ultra-violet rays, etc. The laws that govern these
different types of rays are not the same. Now imagine that the vehicle that was sent by
Almighty Alla>h Y was made in such a fashion as to exceed the speed of light. In how
much time could it have traveled five hundred kilometers? Probably in zero time! In no
time would he have arrived at zero time. Then we have minus time. We should try to
understand the event of Mera>j by observing the natural phenomena and the laws
Alla>h Y placed in them.

ar-Ruh
The Holy Prophet Muhammad e did not have his body and spirit as two things, nor do I
have it, nor do you. The body is only the manifestation of the projection in the spatialtemporal dimension of the soul. The real human personality is a point of light in intense
motion. This point of light in intense motion is the transcendental factor which was
created by Allah Y in the Garden of Eden and which was there and which projects itself
in the spatial-temporal dimension and assumes the form of the body. When it projects
itself only in the temporal dimension it assumes the form of mind. Mind is only temporal,
whilst body is spatial-temporal. The moment this human personality withdraws itself,
there is nothing left. This is the meaning of death. The consciousness is a part and parcel
of the soul. We call it ar-Ruh. The word ruh in Arabic means the essence not the soul.
Essence is the exact meaning of the word ruh. In modern and ancient philosophy there
has been given a vital importance to this distinction between the concept of essence and
the concept of existence, as to whether essence or existence is the basic factor in
connection with a certain thing. We say in Islam that existence precedes essence and that
human beings existed in the knowledge of God. They were not then even essences but
only ideas. When those ideas crystallized, the first form that they took was essence,
which is the exact meaning of the word ruh. The Arabic ar-Ruh means The Essence.
This essence has evolved under the Divine Law for billions of years and emerged here in
the spatial-temporal dimension as this person. It will travel away from here at the time of
death. It will be the essence with all the accumulated properties which it accumulated in
the process. So to say that, I have got a body, mind and soul is the talk of ignorant

people. A scientist, philosopher or Muslim i.e. a believer in the Holy Qur'aan, should not
talk in this fashion. The most important contribution that the Holy Qur'aan has made in
the history of mankind is the principle of Unity or Tauhid. We are ahle Tauhid. Due to
ignorance people understand Tauhid as being God is one. Again they are wrong for God
is not one. If you say that God is one, i.e. numerically one then you are committing kufr
because the numerical one is a finite concept whilst God is infinite. He is not an
arithmetical one. He is unity. There is a big difference between the concept of the
numerical one and the concept of unity.

When we say oneness of Allah Y These are our words because of paucity of our
knowledge and paucity in our power of expression.. In connection with this again, there
are distinct schools. Three, for instance, basically, i.e. Hamaoost, Hama-az-oost and
Hama-ba-oost. All is He [Hamaoost]; All is from Him [Hama-az-oost] and All is with
Him [Hama-ba-oost]. What is the connotation of this distinction? Then this Islamic
principal of unity does not break itself up into plurality. It remains all the time one. But
then this distinction is made that God alone is really existent, as He says about Himself in
the Holy Qur'aan [Sura al-Baqarah [The Heifer], Verse 255]:







He is al-Qayyum, which means He Who Is Self Existent. Then the Sufis say Allah Y is
wajuud or He is Existence Personified. Allah Y is al-Haqq or He is Truth Personified.
Allah Y is Nur , He is light personified and so on. Here (relating to our discussion), Allah
Y is Existence Personified. We are not. We are mawjuud whilst He is Wajuud. We exist by
the fate of His will. He exists by Himself. To be mawjuud is just to be a mere speck on
the tape of The Will of His Supreme Power, which may be there or may not be there. This
distinction stops that unity from becoming divided into plurality.

THE LATEST ADVANCES in the domain of Physical Science reveal that the basis of
Matter is Energy[18]" and we may reasonably regard the world to have begun in
the form of "waves of probability." Again, the analysis of the atom demonstrates that the
basic constituents of matter are the electric particles whose fundamental attributes are
light and heat.

The Islamic thought on these problems is similar. According to Islam, the universe, which
is of an expanding and evolutionary character, began within the waves of probability,
as a nucleus of Light - known in Islamic terminology as the Light of
Muhammad[19] that has been continuously unfolding itself. The fact that we live in
an expanding universe is proof enough that the essential Holy Prophet Muhammad e is
alive and functioning. The highest in the scale of creation are the human beings. Now,

according to Islam, the highest among the human beings themselves are the Prophets and
Messengers of God. It is they who are the embodiments of true human perfection, which
is spiritual. Among the Prophets and Messengers of God, again, the highest in the scale is
the personality of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. For, his perfection is comprehensive,
while others were blessed only with basic perfection.

Three grades of perfection have been mentioned in the Holy Quraan below the category
of Prophets and Messengers. They have been graded in their order of merit as "the
Truthful" (or, Embodiment of Truth), "the Martyrs" (or, Embodiments of Sacrifice in the
Way of God) and "the Righteous" (or, Embodiments of Righteousness). The Prophets and
the Messengers are perfectly sinless in spite of their humanity. This forms the foundation
of their perfection. The Truthful, the Martyrs and the Righteous stand below them serially
in their order of merit, and their immunity from sinfulness is in accordance with their
grades.

I pray Muslims stop bickering on these topics and become beacons of light that radiate on
others and draw them to the truth.

Allah Y knows best

Irshad Soofi

[1] Homer is the name given to the author of the early Greek poems
the Iliad and the Odyssey. Homer's works begin the Western Canon
and are universally praised for their poetic genius.

[2] The Elizabethan Era is the period associated with the reign of
Queen Elizabeth I (15581603) and is often considered to be a golden
age in English history. It was the height of the English Renaissance,
and saw the flowering of English literature and poetry. This was also
the time during which Elizabethan theatre flourished and William
Shakespeare, among others, composed plays that broke away from
England's past style of plays and theatre.
[3] the act of speaking while alone, especially when used as a
theatrical device that allows a character's thoughts and ideas to be
conveyed to the audience
[4] al-Baqillani (i.e. the greengrocer), the qadi Abu Bakr Muhammad b.
al-tayyib b. Muhammad b. Dha'far b. al-qasim, in most of the sources
Ibn al-Baqillani, but in popular usage simply al-Baqillani, Ash'ari
theologian and Maliki jurisprudent. died on 3 Dhu'l-qa'da 403/5 June
1013. The I'dhazal-qur'an, printed several times, is regarded as a
classic work on the subject.
[5] Ab s Muhammad ibn s ibn Surat ibn Ms ibn ad-Dahhk asSulam at-Tirmidh (824-892, ie 209 AH - 13 Rajab 279 AH) was a
collector of hadith. He wrote the Sunan al-Tirmidhi, one of the six
canonical hadith compilations used in Sunni Islam. Starting at the age
of twenty, he travelled widely, to Kufa, Basra and the Hijaz, seeking
out knowledge from, among others, Qutaiba ibn Said, Bukhari, Imam
Muslim and Abu Dawud.
[6] abu Bakr Muhammad Ibn Sirin Al-Ansari (33-110H; a.d. 653-728),
wasborn in Basra, as 's migration frommentioned, in a.d. 653, i.e.
the 33rd year after Muhammad Makkah to Madinah. He was a Muslim
interpreter of dreams who lived in the 8th century. He is a
contemporary of Anas ibn Malik.

Imam Sufyan Ibn 'Uyaynah [Died 198 AH] linked the generation of the Tabi'ieen with that of the
lowers of Atba' al-Atba (the second generation after the Sahabah). He was the rare and unique schola
his age, and he was a torch for the Sunnah and a proof upon the Ummah
[8] a paper currency international monetary system at Bretton
Woods. They used the link between the US dollar and gold in the
Bretton Woods Agreement as a fig leaf to hide the fact that paper
could now be printed and used as money without any requirement that
it be redeemable in the market in real money,
i.e., money with intrinsic value. The Bretton Woods Agreement paved
the way for the International Monetary Fund to be established in 1944

with the explicit function of maintaining an international monetary


system of precisely such non-redeemable paper currencies.
[9] Bukhari: Vol 009, Book 092, Hadith 422
[10] from the Kitaab (Book) Jawahirul Hekam, written by Maulana
Mohammed Badre Aalam Sahib, one of the leading spiritual luminaries
of Deoband, India, a HADITH which speaks volumes on the FITNA or
mischief-making ULAMA of the latter days and their FITNA-making
worshippers who congregate in the Mosques. The HADITH is quoted
from MISHQAT as recorded on page 38 by BAIHAQI.
[11] Strife, trials, tribulations-that which fascinates, confuses,
deceives, intimidates, corrupts and oppresses
[12] The word backs should be understood in terms of transcendental
existence.
[13] The emergence of individual human beings on the earth seems to
have been designed to take place through a process of evolution
covering countless stages of transformation and in the form of a series
spread over a vast span of time, as different Quraanic verses and the
verdict of Muslim thinkers like Rumi affirms. (See: Iqbals
Reconstruction of Religious Thought in Islam, p 115).
[14] In fact, as Mercy unto the worlds (21:107), he has been exalted
by God to be the Medium of His Blessings in an immeasurably wider
perspective. The unique position which he holds among all creatures,
has been unambiguously affirmed also in a Hadith reported by the
Holy Prophets Companion Jabir and upheld as authentic in Islamic
history byminent authorities, among whom may be mentioned, by way
of example, one of the classical Quraanic commentators, Allama Alusi
(vide his classical Tafseer, the Ruh al-Maani, vol. 1, p. 51). It is to the
effect: Jbir (Allah be pleased with him!) reports: I said O Messenger
of Allah! Inform me about the thing which Allah created before all
(other) things. He replied: Verily, Allah, the Almighty, created before
all (other) things the Light of your Prophet through His Light
(Quoted on the authority of muaddith Abd al-Razzq (the eminent
forerunner and teacherof Imam Bukhari and author of Al-Musannaf) by
Allama Yusuf b. Ismail al-Nabhani, in Al-Anwaar al-Muhammadiyyah
min
Mawahib al-Ludunniyah, p. 12, Beirut, 1310 A.H.]. The Hadith then
proceeds to inform that the entire universe was created by God from

that original created Light, which the luminaries of Islam have named
as the Light of Muhammad.
[15] The scientific representation of creation begins - as in Genesis with light. Light is the primordial form of energy, the starting point of
the Universe. We know this for two reasons: 1) light is the most
symmetric energy form known, and therefore the most "primitive", as
it cannot be derived from any more symmetric form; 2) light is the
only energy form capable of creating and sustaining its own
dimensional conservation domain, space - light creates space by virtue
of its intrinsic motion, velocity A General Systems Analysis of the
Creative Process in Nature
(revised March 2005)
John A. Gowan
http://www.people.cornell.edu/pages/jag8/index.html

[16] Ghazzali-Ihya ' ul - uluum Vol. 1 Section 3


[17] Al-Hafiz Imad al-Din abu fidaa Ismail bin Kathir Ibn al Dimishki t.
Explication of the Holy Qur'a>n Volume 1, Page 352
[18] That Energy and Matter are inter-convertible has been stated by
Einstein in his famous Theory of Relativity. His formula is: E = mc2.
Here, E = energy, m = mass, and c = velocity of light. As regards the
source of Energy itself, Dr Alan Isaacs say: "The ultimate source of the
energy of the universe is a subject for speculation; it is possible
indeed, that it is being continuously created by a power beyond the
scope of our understanding". (Introducing Science, p. 130).

[19] 1 Cf. the famous Hadith: "I (i.e. the Holy Prophet Muhammad) am
from the Light of God and the entire creation is from my Light".

Status Of Hazrath Shaykh Abd Al-Qaadir Jilaani


(may Allah be well pleased with him)
REVISED VERSION

Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the 8th
Sura, al-Anfaal: Verse 34

None can be its Guardians (Awliya) except the righteous


(The Awliya are the Righteous.)
The Journey To Allah
In quoted Sura of the Holy Qur'aan, the 8th Sura, al-Anfaal: Verse 34,
Allah refers to the guardians of the Sacred Haram ash-Shareef, The
Noble Sacred Sanctuary in Makkah, but The Ones who know Allah
(urafa) have taken it a step further and say that the Haram ashShareef, is the Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him, his family and his
companions). He is the sanctuary to which all the lovers of Allah turn to
for protection. They are drowned in his reality. They seek the Beloved
of Allah. His true heirs, the awliya serve as guardians of the Spiritual
Hearts or qalb of their devotees. The Spiritual Hearts or Qalb is the
nucleus of The Essence Of Man or the ruh. This Spiritual Organ of
Perception is where Transcendent Realities enter into contact with man.
The Qalb is the connection (al-barzakh) between this world and the
next. It is also the battlefield of the Greater Holy War (jihad al-akbar).
Here a battle is fought between the Yearning Spirit (ruh) and the
downward pulling lower self (nafs). The qalb is the sanctified center of
man because it is the place that can contain Allah. Keeping watch
over the qalb is part of the spiritual struggle of the Journey of Return to
Allah. The heart of the Perfect Man is the Divine Throne around which
circle spiritual realities. It is these Perfect Men (awliya) that guard our
spiritual hearts and perfect them.
Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the 53rd
Sura, an-Najm: Verse 42:

To Allah is the final Goal.


In the path of Tasawwuf or Developing Spiritual Culture (Sufism) one has to cultivate an
intense, all absorbing Love and connection (Nisbat) with Allah.
On this path, the Subject is Allah, the Goal is Allah, the vehicle to transport one to Allah
is Prophet of Allah through whose spiritual personality one absorbs divine blessings, as
mentioned in the 62nd Sura, al-Jumuah, Verse 3

(To purify, instruct and bestow wisdom) upon those who come later
The fuel for this journey is Ishq. (Intense Love for Allah and his Holy Prophet (Peace be
upon him, his family and his companions). The traveler on this path is called a Saalik
and the guide who acts as the means between the Sought (Allah) and the seeker is called
Murshid.
The Quraan says in the 5th Sura, al-Maida, Verse: 35:

O ye who believe! Do your duty to Allah, seek the means of approach unto Him, and
strive with might and main in His cause: that ye may prosper.
Degrees Of Friends Of Allah
Every traveler (Saalik) on the Spiritual Path of Return to Allah who reaches the stage of
"Friendship of Allah" (Wilayat), his status as Friend of Allah- (Wali Allah), is dependant
on his relationship (Ta'alluq) with Allah. When this relationship reaches intensity it is
called Intense relationship (Nisbat). Some Aulia attain the link or Relationship Of
Love (Nisbate Ishq), some attain the Relationship Of Obedience (Nisbate Itta'at). Some
attain Relationship Of Recognition (Nisbate Marifat). Depending on this Nisbat the
nature of the Walis status is determined. There are up to 124 000 different degrees of
Friendship Of Allah (Wilaya), everyone of them on the footsteps of a Messenger or
Prophet of God e.g.:
1. The Station Of Jesus (Wilayate Issawi). The wali inherits the
station of Isa (may Allah bless him with peace). He doesn't
marry etc.
2. The Station Of Moses: (Wilayate Mussawi). The wali inherits
the station of Musa (may Allah bless him with peace). He is strict
on Shariah. Displays jalaal12[1] in temperament.
3. The Station Of Abraham: Wilayate Ibrahimi. The wali inherits
the station of Ibrahim (may Allah bless him with peace). He

12[1] Jalaal: The Divine Majesty. Jalaal indicates Allahs Incomparability (tanzib).
His Qualities of Majesty include His Transcendence, His Inaccessibility, His
Magnificence, His Tremendousness; Awe (haybat) is experienced when Jalaal
overwhelms the heart

attains friendship of Allah, prepare children and relatives as


Imams etc.
Some Aulia attain one degree, some two, whilst others attain all combined, i.e. up to
seven different Nisbat combined. But every Nisbat when it reaches its Zenith/peak it
changes into The Abd or slave of Allah who submits totally. (Nisbate Abdiat). This
Nisbate Abdiat takes one into the precincts of Wilayate Muhammadi. (Here everything
submits to the Wali, including his ego). At this point the Wali no more remains a mere
seeker (murid), but he becomes the sought (muraad).
Abu Muhammad Muhay ud-din Abd' al Qadir Jilani (may Allah be well pleased with
him) was unique. He was born as one totally submitted (Nisbate Abdiat) and with
everything submitting to him (Wilayate Muhammadi). This status is inheriting the
miraculous spiritual height of Muhammad (Peace be upon him, his family and his
companions). This is the reason why in being a beloved (Mahboobiyat), He was called
Beloved of Allah (Mehboobe Subhani). He is unique and the leader amongst the Aulia.
All Aulia are under him. Sheikh Bataa'ihi states13[2][1],
We, and all other saints (Awliya), are within the safekeeping of the breaths he breathes, under the
protection of his foot, and within the orbit of his command.

Qurb Or Closeness
On the path is also Qurb (how close one gets to Allah). There are 3 stages here:
1. Closeness through optional devotion. (Qurb Nawafil)
2. Closeness through obligatory devotion (Qurbe Faraiz)
3.

Collection of collectives in proximity [Jama Baynal Qurbayn (Jam'ul


Jama)]

This is explained in a Hadith E Qudsi included in Bukhari "Do not become enemies of My Walis or be prepared to make war with Allah. When My servant after
accomplishing his compulsory devotion (Faraiz) seeks My nearness through optional devotion (Nawafil) I
begin to love him. When I love him, I become his Faculty of Audition so that he hears by Me, I become his
faculty of sight, so he sees by Me, I become his Faculty of speech so that he speaks by Me and I become
his faculty of grasp so that he holds by Me. In another report it says "anything he asks I give." I become his
"Heart with which he loves."

It is also said in another Hadith,


Beware of the penetrating insight (firaasa) of the believer (mumin) for he sees by the
light of Allah.

13[2] Qalaaid al-Jawahir Shaykh Muhammad ibn Yahya at-Taafdifii P.80


al- Baz edition

Sheik Abd al-Qaadir Jilaani (may Allah be well pleased with him) writes in his book,
Ghunya, that,
Whilst a Mumin sees by the light of God, the Wali sees through God.

The Sufi becomes annihilated in God therefore the attributes of Allah are assimilated in
his personality. (Fana fis Sifat) The Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him, his family and his
companions) has instructed,
"Takhalaqu bi Akhlaqila"
Imbue yourself with divine attributes
He also becomes annihilated in the deeds (Aafaal) and in the essence (zaat)
At this stage, visibly it is man (Zaahir) but in reality (Baatin) it is Allah. In Jama'a
Baynal Qurbayn" all these are combined. Ghous Al Azam (may Allah be well pleased
with him) was annihilated in Allah, and existed through Allah.
E.g. whilst delivering a sermon, a bird made a noise and without looking he said, "may
the head of the noisemaker fall off" and the bird died and fell. Thereafter he said, "come
alive in the name of Allah " and the bird got up and flew. (This is total annihilation in
God).
The Leader Of All Awliya
His famous saying in Qasida Ghausia, which he said as one 'Whose faculty of speech
Allah had become',
Qaddami Hazihi alla raqabati Kulli Waliyyin li llah
"My foot is on the neck of all Walis".
When our Master uttered this statement 313 Aulia in this world, and in the world of souls
etc. bent their necks. At this time Khwaja Muinuddin Chishti Ajmeri (may Allah be well
pleased with him) was in a young man in a cave in Khurasan and he said, "Your foot is
on my eye and head not only my neck." This declaration, by Sheik Abd al-Qaadir Jilaani
(may Allah be well pleased with him) concerns the 'station of uniqueness' (fardiyya). All
Awliya witnessed at the time of this declaration the flag of Central Administration
(Qutbiyya) or being the key player in Allahs mode of administration paraded in front of
Shaykh Abd al-Qaadir (may Allah be well pleased with him) and the crown of Assisting
with Allahs leave (Ghawthiyya) placed upon his head.14[3] Complete Managerial
Disposition (tasrif) was given to him. It is also stated in Qalaaid al-Jawahir15[4]
14[3]Ibid.p.103
15[4] Ibid.p.104

"He donned this robe in the presence of all the saints, those of former times and those more recent, those
still alive in their physical bodies and those (physically) dead but alive in their spiritsthere was not a saint
anywhere on earth, who did not bend his neck towards him."

All Aulia receive the Spiritual flow of Kindness of the Holy Prophet (Peace be upon
him, his family and his companions) or Faize Mustawi from Ghous Al Azam (May Allah
be well pleased with him) It is stated that once a highly spiritualized person came to him
from Jerusalem. He was at a state that one step transported him from Jerusalem to
Baghdad. Shaykh Abd al-Qaadir said that he had come to repent on his hand. The pupils
asked that why should such a spiritually elevated being need to repent. He answered,
"He experienced the state of walking through the air, but he needs me to teach him the
path that leads to love (mahabba)."
Hazrath Ahmad Sirhindi Naqshbandi or Mujaddid Alf Sani (may Allah be well pleased
with him) says that there are 2 Levels of Sainthood (Wilayat) i.e.
1. The Minor Wilayat (Wilayate Sughra) which all Awliya have, but
2.

The Major Wilayat (Wilayate Kubra) that has been given exclusively to
Ghous al Azam (may Allah be well pleased with him)

One of the disciples of Khwaja Sulaiman Tauswi (may Allah be well pleased with him)
said, out of pride, "Ghaws Paaks foot is not on my Sheik Khwaja Sulaiman Tauswi (may
Allah be well pleased with him) . Khwaja Sulaiman Tauswi (may Allah be well pleased
with him) called him and said "My Murid does not accept me as Wali. One can only
become a Wali through Ghaws Al Azam." Those who know state that if a Wali does not
present himself at the Burial Place (Mazaar) of Ghaws Al Azam, whilst in Baghdad,
Wilayat is taken away from him.
Maulana Thanwi, one of the eminent Ulama of Deoband, wrote in his book Ashrafus
Sawaane,
"I saw Haji Imdadullah Muhajir Makki (may Allah be well pleased with him), my
Spiritual guide, in my dream and he was in his grave. On the wall of the grave was
written, Become a dog at the door of Ghous al Azam (Saghe Darbare Jilan Shud...)
He also writes in a book called Ifaazate Yaumia (daily discourses),
I heard from Maulana Fazl ur-Rahman Ganj Muradabadi, that there was a washer-man of Ghaws Paak who
when questioned in the grave, out of ignorance but love, answered all three questions with the words,
Ghous al Azam. Allah ordered the Angels to record his name amongst the inmates of heaven."

It is sad that the Ulama of Deoband and their affiliates called Tabligh Jamaat are waging
a war against the time-honored understanding of the status of Awliya and the rites and
rituals of love attached to their remembrance. It is also sad to note that some of those who
possess sound belief regarding Awliya but lack knowledge are making claims, e.g. that
great Awliya possess them etc. This state of affairs has to be remedied by the true
practitioners of Tasawwuf. The states of the Sufi's are difficult to understand, let alone

attain. May Allah increase their love in our hearts and may we strive to serve God and his
creation as they served. Perhaps this will become an excuse for our salvation.
Irshad Soofi: Revised version May 27, 2004 / Rabi as-Saani 8, 1425 seeking one look of
grace from the Master, Ghous al Azam.

The Spiritual Administration


Sura al-Anaam 6 Verse 122

And is he who was dead, and then We gave him life and gave him a
light by which he walks among mankind be like him who is in
darkness
According to all the true Spiritual Masters, those who have transmitted
the teachings of The Science of Spirituality or Tasawwuf orally or in
writing, Allah controls His universe, through a class of people known as
Awliya. Due to their reaching a high stage of surrender to Him, He has
replaced their will, with His will. Allah radiates on them with His
attribute of al-Wali, the Protecting Friend, and they become the means
through which Allah activates His attribute of protective friendship. The
level of Wilayat or sainthood is based on the level of spiritual
advancement. The intellectual proof of Islam is found among the
Ulema or scholars whilst the personification of 'surrender to the Will of
Allah' or the visible proof are the Awliya.
The truth of the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) 's integrity is
manifested through these Awliya. Through the blessings of the coming
of Awliya it rains and because of their pure lives we are blessed with
plant growth. Allah acts through Awliya in particular ways allowing
them to utilize His powers. This in no way constitutes that they act as
advisories or influence Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He). They have

been blessed with the service of filtering Allah's energy throughout the
world due to their closeness to him. Those Awliya who pass into the
realm of Divine Beauty, physically, continue to perform duties in the
spiritual realm. Because man is superior to the Angels as Khalifatullah
and not as a sinful human being, those who become Allahs beloved,
friends are given the freedom of both the worlds. Allah says in Sura 16
Nahl Verse 97

I revive them immediately after death to a new functioning life


Which is extremely healthy, pure and a life of felicity

And I will reward them in a most beautiful manner for what they have
done

The reward, which is to come on the Day of Judgment, has been


mentioned separately from this, that Allah says, I revive them. What
happens is, because man is superior to the angels and the angels are
the functionaries of Allah in this universe, about which the whole
Islamic theology stands on as proof, these people are joined to the
company of angels and are made their leaders. One of the last great
thinkers in Islam, Shah Waliullah, the great Muhadith of Delhi, (ad.
1077/1166) says16[1]:
When a human being passes away no relation is left between his soul
and the world of matter. The souls return to their origin, become like
angels, and like them, give inspiration and help to men. They help in
the dissemination and strengthening of Allah s religion. They rush to
help those who work for this path. It has been witnessed that they
come to help in groups
These Awliya Allah become the leaders of companies of Angels, since
they are Superior to Angels, they become functionaries and they have
the freedom. Like the Angels performance of duties for Allah in no way
constitutes that, He is not all Powerful, Awliya have the ability to
spiritually heal, spiritually protect, transform weather patterns and
display many different powers that Allah blesses them with.
Electricity at the powerhouse is produced at a high voltage.
Transformers are established to bring down the voltage at each level.
When it reaches 220V it is allowed to go into the homes. For everything
in the universe there is only one powerhouse, the Being of Allah- life,
light, beauty and knowledge flows from here. This blessing must flow
into the universe so that everything functions and remains alive. The
first transformer is the heart of the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa
sallam) and the others in the serial order are the hearts of those abd's
(totally surrendered to the Divine Will) that have attained the status of
Awliya Allah. Through them the blessings of Allah flow into this dead
universe giving it life and light. This is explained in a Hadith E Qudsi
included in Bukhari "Do not become enemies of My Walis or be prepared to make war with
Allah. When My servant after accomplishing his Faraiz (compulsory
devotion) seeks My nearness through Nawafil (optional devotion,) I
begin to love him. When I love him, I become his Faculty of Audition
so that he hears by Me, I become his faculty of sight, so he sees by
Me, I become his Faculty of speech so that he speaks by Me and I
become his faculty of grasp so that he holds by Me. In another report
it says "anything he asks I give." I become his "Heart with which he
loves."
16[1] Shah Waliullah Muhadith Dehlavi Hujjatu 'llahi 'l-Baligha
Vol.1p.35

It is also said in another Hadith,


"Beware of the penetrating insight (firaasa) of the believer (mumin) for
he sees by the light of Allah."
Among the Awliya there are four thousand who are hidden. They don't
know one another and are themselves unaware of their excellent state,
being hidden from themselves and from mankind. These elite beings
are in the realm of 'general saint-ship' (Wilayat aama). The
functionaries of Allah's court, involved in the Spiritual Administration
are in the realm of 'special saint-ship' (Wilayat khaassa): They are
classified in the hierarchy as:
1. Three hundred Akhyaar (good) - very good 'righteous' and upright
servants of Allah
2. Forty Abdaal (substitute)- the pegs of the universe, who live
physically on the earth and who are 'substituted' (badal) every time
one leaves the physical realm. . In a Hadith Prophet (sallallahu alaihi
wa sallam) said, There will be 40 Abdaal on the soil of Mulk-e-Sham
(Syria) till the Day of Judgement. If one dies another will take his
place
3. Seven Abraar (pious) from among the Abdaal - spiritual guardians
4. Four Awtaad (pillars) from among the Abdaal
5.

Three Nuqaba (leaders) and

6.

One called Qutb or Ghawth.

The Abdaal, amongst whom the higher category is called Abraar and
Awtaad are the deputies of the Qutb or Ghawth who is the main
receiver of Allah's spiritual energy. All others receive spiritual energy
through the Qutb. The Abraar and Awtaad are assigned as regional
Qutb's in separate areas of the earth. All are answerable to the
Supreme Qutb and to spiritual superiors within the network. The
identity of the Qutb is veiled to the world due to the sensitive nature of
the job. There is also no need for disclosure of his identity since his
work is to filter Allah's energy into the world. The teachers of Tasawwuf
or Shaykhs are made apparent and visible in the world, since people
need contact with them. One of the Shaykhs may hold one of the
positions of Qutb or Abdaal but, again, it is not necessary to disclose
this.

Abu Muhammad Muhay ud-din Abd' al Qadir Jilani (Rahmatullah-alai)


or Ghous al-Azam (The supreme Ghous) is unique. He was born as
one totally submitted (Nisbate Abdiat) and with everything submitting
to him (Wilayate Muhammadi). ). This is the reason why in being a
beloved (Mahboobiyat), He was called Beloved of Allah (Mehboobe
Subhani). He is unique and the leader amongst the Aulia. All Aulia are
under him. Sheikh Bataa'ihi states,
We, and all other saints (Awliya), are within the safekeeping of the
breaths he breathes, under the protection of his foot, and within the
orbit of his command.
Ghous Al Azam (Rahmatullah-alai) is annihilated in Allah (fana), and
remains active through Allah (baqa). His famous saying in Qasida
Ghausia, which he said as one whose faculty of speech Allah
becomes,
"Qaddami Hazihi alla raqabati Kulli Waliyyin li llah"
"My foot is on the neck of all Walis".
When our Master uttered this statement 313 Aulia in this world, and in
the world of souls etc. bent their necks. This declaration, by Sheik Abd
al-Qadir Jilani (Rahmatullahi alaihi) concerns the 'station of uniqueness'
(fardiyya). All Awliya witnessed at the time of this declaration the flag
of Central Administration (Qutbiyya) or being the key player in Allahs
mode of administration paraded in front of Shaykh Abd al-Qadir
(Radiallahu anhu), and the crown of Assisting with Allahs leave
(Ghawthiyya) placed upon his head.17[2] Complete Managerial
Disposition (tasrif) was given to him. It is also stated in Qalaaid alJawahir18[3],
"He donned this robe in the presence of all the saints, those of former times and those more recent, those
still alive in their physical bodies and those (physically) dead but alive in their spiritsthere was not a saint
anywhere on earth, who did not bend his neck towards him."

All Aulia receive the Spiritual flow of Kindness of the Holy Prophet
(sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) or Faize Mustawi) from Ghous Al Azam
(Rahmatullah-alai). It is stated that once a highly spiritualised person
came to him from Jerusalem. He was at a state that one step
transported him from Jerusalem to Baghdad. Shaykh Abd al-Qadir said
that he had come to repent on his hand. The pupils asked that why
should such a spiritually elevated being need to repent. He answered,
17[2] Ibid.p.103
18[3] p.104

"He experienced the state of walking through the air, but he needs me
to teach him the path that leads to love (mahabba)."
Hazrath Ahmad Sirhindi Naqshbandi a.k.a Mujaddid Alf Sani
(Rahmatullahi alaihi) says that there are 2 Levels of Sainthood
(Wilayat) i.e.
1) Wilayate Sughra (small Wilayat) which all Awliya have, but
2) Wilayate Kubra (the great Wilayat) is given exclusively to Ghous
al Azam (Radiallahu anhu).
According to the Aarifeen he will only relinquish the position of being
the Main Player in the Central Administration (Qutbe Kubra) to Imam
Mahdi (Alai' his salaam).
Remember in Sura al-Fatiha 1 Verse 5

Thee do we worship, and Thine aid we seek,


Here Allah speaks of ibaadat or worship and istiyaanat or seeking assistance.
Worshipping other than Allah is shirk. The asking of help from a helper, as the
asking of dua from a pious Muslim, in no way implies that the person
who asks believes any good can come apart from Allah. In effect he is
asking Allah, but he is using the means that Allah put at his disposal,
including the intercession of those who may be closer than him to Allah
IRSHAD SOOFI
28 RABI UL AWWAL 1422
21 JUNE 2001

Sufism and the 21st Century


Introduction

In the west there is constant criticism that Islam didnt sufficiently develop its
theological and philosophical system so that a believer may be able to orient himself
more easily in modern times. Whilst Muslims constantly declare the superiority of
our faith, our dismal failure at presenting a workable Islamic model has left us to be
dominated by the prevailing world order, and the adherents of Islam constantly
resorting to the western alternative as a life model.
Our lack of insight of the challenges of the 21st century and our inability to
articulate a comprehensive Islamic response, which is a consequence of our narrowminded view of Islam, is a major contributing factor to the present dilemma of the
Muslims. An attempt will be made in this paper to elucidate some of the modern
challenges, and to proffer the most workable Islamic solution; that which will not only
thwart the advances of the kuffar but can also contribute most significantly to Muslims
realizing the extent of their spiritual potential. Insha Allah
Transcript.
In former times when savagery prevailed, when force and compulsion ruled the world,
empires were established with the conquests of land and the subjugation of its
inhabitants. When civilization however, prevailed, the greatest weapons in the hands of
any conqueror were science and knowledge. 21st century warfare bears testimony to this.
Since power and rule has passed to the hands of science, and with the advancements in
science and technology, and the resulting emergence of the age of mass communication,
the battlefield for 21st century conquests has also changed. The struggle between truth and
falsehood, belief and unbelief, is for the most part a battle for hearts and minds, a battle
of persuasion, of ideas and civilization. It is primarily a war for economic and cultural
dominance. Mans most effective weapon today is in eloquent expression-the unique
ability to make others accept ones ideas through eloquence and persuasion. Thus, in this
age of information, mass media has pervaded all aspects of life.
Manipulation of information to achieve ones own ends has become the driving force
behind the tragedies of modern history. As long as a person or persons have a monopoly
over the mechanisms used for the promulgation of information, they are 'free' to exhibit
their views, ideas, and propagate their ideals in the manner they see fit. The "Age of
Information" has rather created an " Age of Misinformation" controlled by a few,
impacting on the lives of billions The cost could be at the cost of the infringement of the
basic rights of millions of people or it could be at the loss of the lives of millions.
Mistakenly attributing the scientific advances from which clearly the military and
economic superiority of the West had sprung to Western thought and civilization,
Muslims too, unfortunately began discarding Islam by relegating it to the mere formal
observance of rituals, instead of the dynamic progressive scientific and organic life
system that it is. A cursory glance at history testifies to this reality that Islam was the
forerunner in all fields of science and technology in the previous millennium, and is the
bedrock of all western scientific advancement and civilization.
In fact, Islam gave birth to the scientific and ' information age' the moment the first
revelation descended to the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) The

first command of "Iqra ushered in this information age. The angel Jibraeel (Alaihis
salaam) transmitted the message from the divine source and the Holy Prophet
Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) relayed it to the rest of humanity. The network
of the Sahaba collected the data of Al-Qur'aan as per the instructions of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam), which contains all the guidance and directives
for society.
Present systems of communication for the promulgation of information such as
newspapers, television, satellites, computers etc. existed in the era of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam)- albeit not in the present form. The revelations
to the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) far outstrip any mode of
satellite communication today.
The message of the kuffar as portrayed in the media is diametrically opposed to the
system of Islam. Both these systems however, have their basis in communication and
information. The Islamic system revolves around the dissemination of information of the
message of the Creator-Allah, to His creation. The media and the powers behind it are
presenting the message of Shaitaan whilst the responsibility of every Muslim is to put
forth the message of Ar-Rahman. However, in the present context this is almost
impossible to achieve as all the mechanisms are in the hands of the Kuffar. What, then, is
the alternative?
A deficient understanding and application of Islam has played a major role in the
backwardness of the Muslim Ummah today. The experience of Islam on four levels i.e.
Sura al-i-Imraan 3:Verse 164

Reciting unto them His verses, and purifying them, and teaching them the knowledge of
the Book and wisdom,

as taught by the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) has not been
realized, and its potential has not been harnessed. If these four levels were to be accessed,
then, the modern age of Internet and computers have not reached the heights reached by
followers of previous prophets- leave alone the Ummah of the Holy Prophet Muhammad
(Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam)!
An incident in the era of Sayyiduna Sulaiman (Alaihis salaam) and Asif Barkhya in
Sura Al Naml shows the ability of a person who has been endowed with" knowledge of
the book" by Allah to bring the throne of Bilqees which was over 1500 kilometers away

to the court of Sulaiman (Alaihis salaam) quicker than the batting of an eyelid: Sura Al
Naml 27:Verse 38-40.

He (Sulaiman) said: "O chiefs! Which of you can bring for me the throne of Bilqees
before they come to me surrendering themselves in obedience?" And Ifrt from the
jinns said: I will bring it to you before you arise from your place. And verily, I am
indeed strong, and trustworthy for such work." One with whom was knowledge of the
Scripture said: "I would bring it to you would then before the twinkling of an eye!" then when Sulaiman saw it placed before him, he said: This is by the grace of my Lord
to test me whether I will be grateful or ungrateful!
Modern media and technology has enabled us to process information only via the
Internet at great speed and has not even reached the position to transport physical objects
at great speed! The crucial question is how can Muslims unleash this spiritual potential?
The primary function of Al-Shariah is the transformation of the human personality on
the basis of faith and surrender to Allah. This transformation is essentially an internal
process, in order to reach the goal- in its case being God. This requires that a person
journeys on the path to Allah meaningfully and purposefully, rather than formalistically
and ritualistically.
The method (Al-Tariqah) that is employed for this purpose has been supplied in the
teachings of the Holy Qur'aan and of the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa
sallam). It has been termed as Tazkiyah in the Holy Quraan -Tazkiyah being the
eradication of the positive and negative evils that obstruct or keep in abeyance the
development of the human personality in the spiritual dimension, and consequently in the
moral dimension. For this purpose Islam employs as its instruments spiritual devotions to

God, spiritual contact with the Holy Prophet (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam), intellectual
grasp of the value system of Islamic code of guidance, study of nature and history,
practice of social morality, meditation, contemplation and periodic seclusion. The scheme
of placing the basic elements of the religious quest in the obligatory religious routine of a
Muslim makes it possible for every Muslim to undertake it in accordance with his
capacity and the availability of opportunity, and not only for a select few.
This crucial method (Tariqah) of tazkiyah which, is primarily achieved through
spiritual contact and a direct link with the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi
wa sallam) unfortunately is looked upon with scorn and disinterest especially by the
youth of today, offers the most sophisticated possibilities, but is rarely being practiced by
the Muslims.
This great knowledge of purification of self (tazkiyah) and knowledge of the book,
which the Sahaba had inherited from the Holy Prophet (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) was
transmitted with the blessing of Allah by the Sahaba -primarily by Sayyiduna Abu Bakr
and Sayyiduna Ali (radiallahu anhu) This field of Islam, like other fields of knowledge
of Islam such as Tafsir, Fiqh, Hadith has been transmitted since the era of the Sahaba
This great science which in the Holy Prophet's (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) era was a
'reality without a name' was classified as "Tasawwuf" and practitioners of Tasawwuf or
Sufism as it is popularly known-have since been called Sufis.
The amazing transformation of the human personality through tazkiyah can be
gleaned from this famous incident of Sayyiduna Umar (radiallahu anhu)
He was on the Pulpit giving the Friday sermon in Madinah when all of a sudden he
exclaimed: "O Sariya, the mountain!" The battle was taking place in Persia and
Sayyiduna Umar miraculously perceived the enemy about to ambush the Muslim army
from behind the mountains. This amazing feat of Sayyiduna Umar whilst on the pulpit in
the mosque of the Holy Prophet (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) 'seeing' this dangerous
situation thousands of kilometers away, is a great example of the degree of knowledge
which the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) had imparted to the
Sahaba.
The Sahaba themselves had developed these capabilities under the guidance of the
Holy Prophet Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) and it is an indication to us what
we can accomplish using our own Allah - given faculties without the use of primitive
physical media such as telephones television, computers etc. More attention and
emphasis needs to be paid to this aspect of Islam, which holds the key to our success in
our jihad against the Kuffar.
Awliya Allah (Friends of Allah) have cultivated this capability through strict spiritual
strivings which are, without a shadow of doubt in keeping with the teachings imparted by
the Holy Prophet (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) with mind-boggling results.
It is the striving of the Awliya Allah through dhikr etc. and strict spiritual striving
[mujahada] in the manner of the Sahaba, as taught to them by the Holy Prophet
Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam), which has elevated them to the rank of

Awliya Allah. Stories of their feats [karamat] that, were brushed off previously as mere
legends, are now regarded as 'marvels of technology' when accomplished in a yet
primitive form by the kuffar today.
It is for this reason that the jihad against Kuffar should be fought on the very same
platform that they have been using to destroy us- ironically, a system that first evolved in
the era of the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) Above all Islamic
sciences Tasawwuf, holds the key to unlocking our most weighty response to the
challenges of the enemies of Islam in the 21st century.
The time has come wherein we beat the Kuffar at their own game- not with sophisticated
machinery, but by developing our own personalities with the Nur of Iman, so that no
force may be able to engulf us, and we as Muslims may lead others from the abyss of
misguidance to the path of truth.

Hafiz Fuzail Soofie Habibi.


Khwaja Muinuddin Chishti
Sura Jumua 62: Verse 2

It is He Who has sent amongst the Unlettered a messenger from


among themselves, to rehearse to them His Signs (in the Quraan and
environment), to purify their souls, and to instruct them in Scripture
and Wisdom, - although they had been, before, in manifest error; Introduction
The personal touch is important in guidance of the Ummah. Mere book
knowledge leads to varied translations and further division. A sick
person needs both the physician and the prescription. Often he needs
the Doctor more than the prescription. Unless there is a competent
physician to administer the prescription properly, the prescription
remains useless. Allah gave us both the physician and the prescription,
The Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) and the Holy Quraan.
The Holy Quraan without The Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam)

would not have ushered in the marvellous transformation, in Arabia,


which is the pride of Islam.

The functions of the Holy Physician have been described in the quoted
verse of the Holy Quraan. Accordingly the duties of the Holy Prophet
(sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) consist of the following:
1.

To read the signs (ayah) of Allah from the Quraan and the
environment, and thereby communicate the message of Allah

2.

To purify their souls, which is different from merely conveying


the message. That is to purify them to understand the message.

3.

To explain the real significance of the passages of the Holy


Quraan, such understanding is received when the purification
process synchronises their insight (basirah) and eyesight.

4.

Finally to bring them face to face with the wisdom which


follows this knowledge of the signs and action of purification.

The Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) combined in himself the


leadership of all the various functions. He was the religious teacher,
spiritual guide, social reformer, commander in chief and political head.
The four Caliphs that followed inherited this leadership in totality. The
temporal power and spiritual lead were centred in the same
personality.

Unfortunate events subsequent to the Martyrdom of Imam Hussain


(radiallahu anhu) sounded the death knell of amalgamated leadership.
The Bani Umayya usurped the temporal power, and the incident of
Karbala and its aftermath paved the way for the modern so called
Islamic Nation States and the external (zahiri) brand of Islam, as
followed by these leaders. Those who could see the reality however,
continued to flock around the ahle bait to drink from the fountain of
knowledge and reality. Under the Umayyad and Abbasid Caliphs these
expounders of the internal true Islam, or the Sufi Dervishes, were
persecuted and that is why these spiritual lessons were given secretly.
The Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) is the ocean, Hazrath Ali
(radiallahu anhu) is the outlet and the ahle bait are the canals that
carry the water to the thirsty. The analysis of the events after Karbala
shows clearly how wealth and power corrupted the morals and respect
for ahle bait. How deep this rot has set in today. Fortunate are those
that are attached to Sufi Orders that have devised effective

mechanisms to keep the love of Ahle Baith, and thus the soul of true
Islam, alive in the heart of its adherent.
Spiritual Guidance
On the return journey from his Farewell Pilgrimage the Prophet
Muhammad (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam), on the 18 Zil Hijjah stopped
at at Ghadir-e-Khum, (which is close to today's Juhfah). an Oasis
between Makkah and Madinah. ). It was a place where people from
different provinces should depart from each other and take different
routes for their home provinces. He called the gathering of
Companions from the various tribes and after addressing them on
important matters he announced that he had received a message from
Allah to declare as follows :- The Messenger of Allah declared: "It
seems the time approached when I shall be called away (by Allah) and
I shall answer that call. I am leaving for you two precious things and if
you hold fast to both of them, you will never go astray after me. They
are the Book of Allah and my progeny that is my Ahl ul-Bayt. The two
shall never separate from each other until they come to me by the Pool
(of Paradise)."
Then the Messenger of Allah continued: "Do I not have more right
over the believers than what they have over themselves?" People cried
and answered: "Yes, O' Messenger of God." Then Prophet (sallallahu
alaihi wa sallam) held up the hand of Ali and said:

Man Kunto Maulaho Fa Aliun Maulaho, Allah humma Wala Man Walaho Wa Aada Man
Aadaho19[1].
He whose spiritual guide I am, Hazrath Ali (Karam-allah wajhu) is also his spiritual
guide, Oh Allah, You keep him as Your friend who keeps him [ Hazrath Ali (Karam-allah
wajhu)] as his friend (and spiritual guide) and You (Allah) treat him as Your enemy who
treats him [Hazrath Ali (Karam-allah wajhu)] as his enemy.
It is narrated that Hazrath Umar (radiallahu anhu) and Hazrath Abu Bakr (radiallahu
anhu) were the first to congratulate Hazrath Ali (radiallahu anhu). They ran up to him and
said said:
"Well done Ibn Abi Talib! Today you became the Spiritual Guide. (Mawla) of all
believing men and women."
Khwaja Sahib is a descendant of Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam)

19[1] Sahih Tirmidhi, v2, p298, v5, p63

Hazrath Khwaja Muinuddin Chishti Sanjari (Rahmatullahi alaihi)


popularly known as Khwaja Ghareeb Nawaaz (The Supporter of the
Poor) is the founder of the Chishtia Order of Sufis in India. He is one of
the most outstanding figures in the history of Islamic Sufism.
The Chishtia Silsila20[2] is one of the most popular and influential Sufi orders in Islam. It
derives its name from Chisht, a village near Herat, Afghanistan, where the founder of the
Order, Khwaja Abu Ishaq (Rahmatullahi alaihi) of Syria, settled. Hazrath Khwaja
Muinuddin Chishti (Rahmatullahi alaihi) brought the Silsila to India at the close of the
11th century A.D. and established its centre in Ajmer, whence the order spread far and
wide in India and became a force in the spiritual life of the Muslims.

Hazrath Khwaja Muinuddin Chishti Sanjari (Rahmatullahi alaihi) was


born in 536 A.H./1141 A.D. at a place called Sanjar, in Sijistan (Persia
or present day Iran). He was in direct lineage of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) being a paternally descended
from the Holy Prophets grandson, Imam Hussain (radiallahu anhu)
and maternally from the Holy Prophets grandson, Imam Hasan
(radiallahu anhu). Thus he is a Hasani and a Husaini Sayyid21[3]. He
was brought up in Khorasan, Iran and received his early education at
home from his father, Hazrath Sayyid Gheyasuddin (Rahmatullahi
alaihi) At the age of 9; he committed the Holy Quraan to memory. He
was 16 yrs old when his father passed into the realm of Divine Beauty;
he inherited a grinding stone and an orchard, which formed a source of
his livelihood.
Spiritual Awakening
A Madjzoub22[4] saint, Hazrath Ibrahim Qandoozi (Rahmatullahi alaihi)
paid Khwaja Sahib a visit at his orchard. Khwaja Sahib laid out a sheet
for him to sit on and offered him a few grapes from the garden. The
20[2] Silsila The Spiritual Chain of each Sufi Order descends from the
Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) down to the present Spiritual
Guide. It is through attachment to the silsila that the newly initiated
disciple has the means to travel to Allah under Divine Protection.
21[3] Sayyid: Master. This title is given to a descendant of the Holy
Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam), descending from his daughter
Fatimah (Radiallahu anha).
22[4] Madjzoub: One under the influence of Divine attraction (jadhba).
The power of this attraction brings about spiritual intoxication (sukr)
and indifference to all that is other than Allah. In being drawn towards
Allah the Madjzoub experiences excessive ecstacy.

saint ate some grapes, and then took out a piece of bread from his
sack and chewed on it. He then took out the chewed bread from his
mouth and placed it in Khwaja Sahib
s
mouth.
An
instant
23
transformation occurred, in keeping with the Sunnah [5] of the Holy
Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam). It is stated in at-Tabarani, that a
slave girl, who was not very modest, asked the Holy Prophet
(sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) for some food whilst he was eating and he
offered her some of the food in his plate. She refused to accept it
saying, I want the food in your mouth. He took some food out of his
mouth and as soon as she ate it she was transformed into the most
modest woman in Madinah. The saints of Allah also practice the
internal, spiritual Sunnah of the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa
sallam). On eating the bread from Hazrath Ibrahim Qandoozi
(Rahmatullahi alaihi), Khwaja Sahib penetrated the thin line separating
the material world from the unseen: the inner organs of perception
opened and so did his universe expand. The veil of worldly imagination
was lifted from his mind and he found himself in quite a strange world
radiating with divine manifestation. The intellectual proof of Islam is
found among the Ulema or scholars whilst the personification of
'surrender to the Will of Allah' or the visible proof are the Awliya. The
truth of the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) 's integrity is
manifested through these Awliya.
With this expanded view of the universe, Khwaja Sahib went to his
mother and with her permission left to acquire more knowledge of
Islam (ilme din). Distributing all his worldly belongings to the poor, he
went to Bukhara and Samarqand to join the famous Nizamia
Universities there for his theological education. He studied under
Hazrath Hussamuddin Bukhari (Rahmatullahi alaihi) and other great
scholars. He completed his academic courses brilliantly in 9 years (552
AH to 561 AH). Adorned with the external knowledge of Islam (ilme
zaahir) he felt an urge to acquire recognition of his Creator (ilme
baatin)
and
thus
he
sought
a
Spiritual
Guide.

The Spiritual Guide is the inheritor of The Holy Prophet (sallallahu


alaihi wa sallam) in his inner Spiritual State, in their outward
behaviour and in their roles as guides and protectors within their
communities. Their Spiritual Hearts (qalb)24[6] are capable of receiving
light and love from Allah and radiating it to those that are in their
23[5] Ash Shifa: Qadi Iyad ibn Musa al-Yashubi: translated by Aisha
Abdurahman Bewley: Madinah Press, Granada, Spain. Page 179/180.
24[6] Holy Quraan Sura al-Anaam 6 Verse 122

attendance. A person may acquire any amount of external knowledge


(ilm) but he cannot reach reality (haqiqah)25[7]until he connects
himself to a Silsila26[8] via a physical present Guide of the Silsila, who
has the powerful transference or overflow from the Great Heart (qalb)
of the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) down the unbroken
chain of recipients.
Maulana Jallaluddin Rumi (Rahmatullahi alaihi) says:
Ilme Baatin Hamchu masqa, Ilme zaahir hamchu sheer
Ke Buwad sheer masqa, ke buwad be Pir, Pir
Internal Knowledge (ilme baatin) is like butter and External Knowledge
(ilme zaahir) is like milk
Like butter cannot be acquired without milk, so to recognition of Allah
(ilme baatin) cannot be obtained without a Spiritual Guide.
Once while Maulana Jalalludin Rumi (Rahmatullahi alaihi) was teaching
his pupils in the open courtyard, next to a fountain, a shabbily
externally dressed but perfectly internally adorned Sufi, Shams Tabrez
(Rahmatullahi alaihi) came to their assembly and watched them. He
saw Maulana Rumi referring to numerous handwritten books in the
course of his teaching. Shams asked Maulana Jalalludin Rumi
(Rahmatullahi alaihi) as to what was in the books. Maulana Jalalludin
Rumi (Rahmatullahi alaihi) replied, O! Sufi. This contains knowledge
that is beyond your understanding so you continue to read your rosary
(tasbih). Unnoticed by Rumi, Hazrath Shams Tabrez (Rahmatullahi
alaihi) threw all the books into the pond of water. When Maulana
Rumis students saw what occurred they began beating Hazrath Shams
Tabrez (Rahmatullahi alaihi). This and the screams of Shams Tabrez
(Rahmatullahi alaihi) alerted Maulana Rumi as to what occurred. He
complained that all his valuable knowledge had been destroyed.
Shams Tabrez (Rahmatullahi alaihi) said; Tell your pupils to leave me
alone and I will give back your books. A visibly dejected Rumi
conceded to the request thinking that this was impossible. He was
surprised to see Shams Tabrez (Rahmatullahi alaihi), recite bismillah,
lift the drenched books from the pond, blew dust of them and returned
them to him intact. He asked Shams Tabrez (Rahmatullahi alaihi) as to
how he did this. Shams Tabrez (Rahmatullahi alaihi) replied, This
knowledge is beyond your understanding so you continue to teach
25[7] The power to connect to Allah.
26[8] Silsila The Spiritual Chain of each Sufi Order descends from the
Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) down to the present Spiritual
Guide.

your pupils. Maulana Jalalludin Rumi (Rahmatullahi alaihi) fell at his


feet and was swept into the currents of love. The presence of this
ragged Sufi, Shams Tabrez (Rahmatullahi alaihi), changed Maulana
Jallaluddin Rumi (Rahmatullahi alaihi) from a respected professor of
theology into a lover of God, one who summed up his whole life with
the phrase, "I burnt, and I burnt, and I burnt." Shams Tabrez
(Rahmatullahi alaihi), targeted Maulana Rumi (Rahmatullahi alaihi)
since he knew that Rumi was ready for receiving Spiritual Training but
the veil of conceit, regarding his knowledge, had to be lifted.
Maulana Jalalludin Rumi (Rahmatullahi alaihi) says,
Sad kitaboh, sad waraq, dar nare kun
Aur jaanoh dil rah, janibeh, dil daar kun
Throw all your books into the fire
And turn with heart and soul to the Awliya
For without them one cannot reach perfection.
Maulvi hargis na shud Maula e Rum
Ta ghulame Shams Tabrizi na shud
Maulana (religious teacher) Rumi could never have become Maula
Rumi (Spiritual Guide)
Without submitting to Spiritual Guide Shams Tabrez

Maulana Rumi (Rahmatullahi alaihi) as the true inheritor of the internal


state of the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) was so respected
that the Muslim Ruler of the time used to kiss his feet out of
reverence.

Meeting With Hazrath Khwaja Usman Haruni (Rahmatullahi Alaihi)


Khwaja Sahib undertook a journey to a place called Harwan or Haroon. He became a
disciple of Hazrath Khwaja Uthman Harooni (Rahmatullahi alaihi) a great Sufi of his
time. Hazrath Khwaja Muinuddin Chisti (Rahmatullahi alaihi) was then consigned to a
hujra27[9] to worship Allah (ibaadat) and strive on the path (riyaazat). A day later his
Guide asked him as to what he could see and he replied, I can see the seven heavens and
the seven earths. Khwaja Uthman Harooni (Rahmatullahi alaihi) said, You are not
ready yet. and sent him back into the hujra. Another day passed and he was asked as to
what he could see and he replied, I can see the abyss of the earth (tahtus sudra) and up
27[9] A room for conducting spiritual exercises.

to the Divine Throne (arsh). Again he got the reply You are not ready yet and was sent
back into the hujra. Another day passed and on being questioned by his Pir he replied, I
can see up to the Glorious Veil (al-Hijab e Azmat) that veils the Creator from us and
beyond the veil. Khwaja Uthman Harooni (Rahmatullahi alaihi) then held out two
fingers and asked him to look through them and say what he sees. He replied, I can see
the 1800 universes. Although some reports say the training lasted three years many say
it lasted three days, and I favour this, since Khwaja Uthman Haruni (Rahmatullahi alaihi)
is reported to have said in Anis ul-Arwah28[10], in our followers there is Spiritual
Striving (mujaheda) of one day and one night only.
Iqbal says:
Har kasse az ramze ishq aga a nesst
Har kasse shayane ee dargae nesst
The secret of love is not for everyone
So the kissing of this great courtyard is not in everyones destiny.

He remained in the company of his Peer-o-Murshid for 21 years and travelled with him
carrying his Murshid's belongings on his head. They travelled to Makkah, Madinah, Iraq,
Syria, Samarqand, Afghanistan, etc. meeting many great saints. While they were in
Makkah in 562 AH, Hazrath Khwaja Uthman Haruni (Rahmatullahi alaihi) took Hazrath
Khwaja Muinuddin Chisti (Rahmatullahi alaihi) to the Holy Kaaba and prayed for him
and a voice was heard declaring: "We have accepted Muinuddin as one of our beloved
devotees." In Madinah the Illuminated, while at the Holy Court of the Holy Prophet
(sallallahu alaihi wa sallam), Hazrath Khwaja Uthman Haruni (Rahmatullahi alaihi)
instructed Hazrath Khwaja Muinuddin Chisti (Rahmatullahi alaihi) to offer his homage
and salutations respectfully. In doing so, a voice was heard saying, "Wa Alaikum usSalaam Ya Qutb ul-Mashaa'ikh-e-bahr-o-bar (Peace be upon you also, O, the Head of the
Pious of the earth and the sea)." On hearing this his Pir-o-Murshid said to him, "Now
indeed you have reached perfection."
Khalifah of the Chisti Order
After full 20 years hard training in the Science of Spirituality (Tasawwuf) under this great
Spiritual Guide, at the age of 46, in the year 582 AH at Baghdad, Hazrath Khwaja
Muinuddin (Rahmatullahi alaihi) was awarded Khilafat29[11] in the Chishtia Silsila. His
Murshid, after advising him, handed over his Sacred Staff (Asa Mubarak), wooden
sandals and prayer mat (Musallah) to Hazrath Khwaja Muinuddin (Rahmatullahi alaihi)
28[10] A written record of the discourses of Khwaja Uthman Haruni by
Khwaja Muinuddin Chisti .
29[11] Khilafat : An official Award of Commission, on spiritual
perfection, to guide others.

saying that those Tabbarukaats 30[12]have come down from Sayyiduna Rasulullah
(sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) in succession. The association with his Spiritual Guide
(Suhbat)31[13] had now prepared him for his mission. This fire of love is passed down the
Spiritual Chain. Heart connection is required to acquire it. A poet has rightly said:

Qareeb Jalte huwe dil keh apna dil karleh


Yeh aag lagti nahi. Lagahi jati heh.
Take yourself close to the heart aflame with Divine Love
This fire cannot be ignited it has to be attained.

Khwaja Bahauddin and how the title Naqshbandi was


attained.
It is reported that once Hazrath Bahauddin Naqshbandi was passing a
clay pot makers shop with some of his disciples when he felt the heat
of a raging furnace. He asked the clay pot maker as to what the fire
was for and he explained that the wet clay pots are placed into the fire
and they become solidly baked. He told his disciples that this was the
secret of love connection. To expound what he was saying, he went
close to the fire and said, Allah! and then walked away into the
crowded market. The clay pot maker was surprised as to what this Sufi
had done. When the baked pots were removed from the furnace, every
pot had the inscription, Allah on it. The clay pot maker ran into the
market place and looked for Hazrath Bahauddin. When he found him
he exclaimed,
E Shae Naqshaband Naqshe mara ba band
O! Master, who imprints the word Allah, Give me a look of grace and
put Allah in my heart

30[12] Tabarruqat: Sacred Relics


31[13] Suhba: The Spiritual Companionship between guide and
disciple. It is the pouring of love of Allah into the Murids heart whilst
increasing the hearts capacity to absorb.

Khwaja Bahauddin Naqshbandi (Rahmatullahi alaihi) says that a


Perfect Friend of Allah must be able to see this universe as he sees his
fingernails. Therefore the Sultan al-Arifin Maulana Rumi (Rahmatullahi
alaihi) says:
Lauh ul- Mahfuz32[14] zast peshe Awliya
The Destiny of all creation is in front of the Awliya like an open book
Shaykh Abd al-Qadir Jilani (Rahmatullahi alaihi) says: 33[15] I see the
world like a mustard seed on my palm.
Naz}artu ila> bila>di llahi jam an
I look upon all the cities of Allah together
Ka-khardalatin ala> h}ukmi ttis}a>li>
As a mere mustard seed compared to my connection with Him (Allah)
If this is the status of Awliya, what must be the status of the Holy
Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam)? The Wahabbi /Salafi / Deobandi
alliance accuses us of equating Rasulullah (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam)
with Allah and declares we are committing an act of assigning
partners to Allah (Shirk). I say we dont say Rasulullah is the partner
of Allah (sharik) but if at all guilty we say he is the Beloved of Allah
(Habib). E.g.: If there are four partners in a business then each will
own a proportionate share. This is sharik. On the contrary a beloved of
one owner, due to the intense love he has for his beloved, makes the
beloved the owner of everything. Therefore Ala Hazrat Imam Ahmad
Raza Khan (Rahmatullahi alaihi) says:
Meh toh Maalik hi kahoonga keh hoh Maalik keh Habib
Yaani Mehboob e Muhib meh nahi mera tera
I will call you the owner (O! Beloved Prophet) because you are the
Owners Beloved
In other words there is no mine and yours between the Lover and the
Beloved
The status, which the the Beloved of Allah (Habib) holds is greater
than any ascribed partner (sharik) could be given.
32[14] Lauh al-Mahfuz: The Divinely Inscribed Tablet upon which the
destiny of all creation is written.
33[15] Al-Fuyuuzaat ar-Rabbaaniyya: Ismail Muhammad Said alQadiri: al-Baz Publishing: The Wine Ode: al-Khamriyya Page 83

His Mission as a Khalifa of The Chishti Order


After ordaining him as a Spiritual Guide, Khwaja Uthman
(Rahmatullahi alaihi) embraced Khwaja Muinuddin (Rahmatullahi
alaihi), affectionately, kissed his forehead and said, "I entrust you to
God". Khwaja Muinuddin then departed with a heavy heart on the
mission entrusted to him. (Anis ul-Arwah). During his tour onwards, a
fourteen-year-old boy, Qutbuddin Bakhtyar Awashi (Born 569 A.H.)
approached him at Asfahan in 583 A.H and was initiated as his spiritual
disciple (mureed). Khwaja Qutbuddin (Rahmatullahi alaihi) was the
first disciple of Khwaja Saheb and he accompanied him on his tour.
Khwaja Saheb received 'Beshara' 34[16] or prophecy in dream from
the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) in 586 A.H, to grant
Khwaja Qutub, Khilafat at an early age of seventeen years. Khwaja
Qutbuddin (Rahmatullahi alaihi) was a born saint. His mother was a
Hafizah of half of the Holy Quraan and she recited Quraan daily
during her pregnancy. He therefore remembered by heart, half of the
Holy Quraan by Allah's grace while he was still in his mother's womb.
Khwaja Saheb during his tour (583 585 A.H.) visited many places
including Makkah and Madinah.
He performed Hajj and whilst at the Holy Kaaba he heard a Voice
declaring. "0 Muinuddin we are pleased with you; you may ask
anything you like." He replied, "0 Almighty Allah, I only pray for the
grace of your pardon to Muinuddins silsila of disciples." Allah
answered: "0 Muinuddin, You are our beloved devotee we shall pardon
your 'murids' and also others who become so in your Spiritual order up
to The Day of Judgement. He then went to Madinah and remained in
devotion for a long time. One night he had a Basharat' from the Holy
Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) who said; "0 Muinuddin, you are
the promoter of our religion. We put India under your charge where
darkness prevails." Go to Ajmer. With your presence the darkness will
disappear and Islam shall shine. God will help you." Khwaja Muinuddin
was much pleased with being given an assignment by the Beloved of
Allah (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam)
but wondered about the
geographical position of Ajmer. He was again blessed with a vision of
the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) and shown a map with
the exact position of Ajmer with its surrounding hills and fort.
Resuming his journey through Hamadan, Tabrez, Isfahan, Khirqan,
Astrabad, and Herat, meeting notable saints in his way he reached
Sabzawar in Afghanistan where he converted the governor of the
place, Yadgar Muhammad who was cruel and haughty and was a Shia
34[16] Beshara: Glad tidings that reach the heart. This may be
announced to a Sufi in his dream or within his Spiritual State (hal)

by faith, who did not recognise and respect the first three Caliphs of
Islam, neither had any respect for Sufis nor for any holy saints. One
look of grace from Khwaja Sahib caused Yadgar Muhammad to repent.
He distributed his wealth among the poor and needy, divorced his
many wives, freed all his slaves and renouncing the world, became one
of the ardent devotees of Hazrath Khwaja Muinuddin Chishti. (Tazkarat
ul-Aulia). Before entering India in 587 A.H., he healed the suffering
humanity throughout his journey, visiting Balkh and Ghazi as well. He
proceeded to Delhi via Fort Shadman, Multan, Lahore and Samana.
At the Holy Court of Data Ganj Baksh (Rahmatullahi alaihi)
At Lahore Khwaja Sahib stayed for forty days at the shrine of Hazrath
Makhdum Sayyid Ali Hujweri (Rahmatullahi alaihi), a descendant of the
Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) who is popularly known as
Data Ganj Baksh (Rahmatullahi alaihi). Hazrath Sayyid Ali Hujweri
(Rahmatullahi alaihi) is a wali of such a high status that it is stated
that Shaykh Abd al-Qadir Jilani (Rahmatullahi alaihi) said, when he
was once mentioned in his gathering, I, Abd al-Qadir, would have
taken him as my Spiritual Guide if I was born in his time. Khwaja
Sahib who had reached such a high spiritual status, had such respect
for Data Sahib, that he spent forty days at the feet of data Sahib.
Before leaving Lahore he offered the following couplet in appreciation
of Ali Hujwiri (Rahmatullahi alaihi)s status:
Ganj Buksh Faize Alam Mazhare Nure Khuda
Naqesara Ra Pir e Kamil Kamila Ra Rahnuma.
He is a bestower of treasure (Ganj Baksh) reflecting Divine Light for
the salvation of mankind.
To the unworthy he is a perfect guide, but to perfect souls, he is still a
guide

This couplet has made him famous forever as 'Data Ganj Baksh. In
what high esteem must adherents of the Chishtia Spiritual Order hold
this Mazaar of Data Sahib where the Sovereign of the Chishtia Order,
Khwaja Sahib spent forty days? Khwaja Nizamuddin Aulia reports that
I saw the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) entering the
Mazaar of my Shaykh, Hazrath Baba Faiduddin Ganje Shakar
(Rahmatullahi alaihi) and he, the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wa
sallam) exclaimed:
Man dakhala hazihi baaba faqat amina

Whosoever enters through this door will enter paradise

Therefore this door is called The Door to Paradise or Behisti Darwaza. How great must
the status of Baba Farid Ganje Shakar (Rahmatullahi alaihi) be?
A poet has said:
Jis neh is dar peh gardan jukayi,
ban gaya who Mahboobe Ilahi
Dekoh Kalyar meh jah,
Khwaja Saabir Piya heh yagaana
Tera kaahim Rahe aastana.
Khwaja Ganje Shakar, kar karam ki nazar
Tera kaahim Rahe aastana.

It is stated that this great wali, Baba Farid (Rahmatullahi alaihi) used to visit the Mazaar
of Data Saheb (Rahmatullahi alaihi), he used to show such reverence that he swept the
forecourt of the mazaar with his beard.
The one who instituted Islam in India
Islamic history records in golden letters that only Khwaja Moinuddin Chishty
(Rahmatullahi alaihi) and no one else instituted the everlasting spirit of Islam in India. He
conquered the hearts of Indian people without any army. It was a grand spiritual victory
that must stand high among all political victories of the world. What Ghaznavi, Lodhi and
Ghauri could not do with their army, Khwaja Muinuddin (Rahmatullahi alaihi) did with
wisdom and love. He conquered India, not by the sword but by winning the hearts with
love and strong character as has been said by Hazrath Nizamuddin Aulia (Rahmatullahi
alaihi) in Fawaid-ul-Fuad35[17]: "None can be converted to Islam either by sword or by
dialogue; but good character is more effective than sword or dialogue. Before converting
someone it is most essential that one must first be a real Muslim."

The Khalifat-Allah actualized


The Hindu ruler of India, Prithvi Raj challenged Khwaja Muinuddin, unsuccessfully, on
many occasions. The ruler sent a Hindu Priest, Shadi Dev or Ram Deo to persuade
Khwaja Saheb to leave the area and not to use the water of the Anasagar Lake for
ablution, since it was a Hindu Holy lake. Khwaja Saheb requested that he be allowed to
fill one water bag. Permission was granted and on Khwaja Sahibs orders, Khwaja
35[17] The discourses of Hazrath Nizamuddin Aulia as recorded by his
disciple Amir Hassan Sijzi.

Qutbuddin went to fill the water bag. The entire lake disappeared into the water-skin bag.
Shaadi Ram was awestruck by the magnetic and miraculous personality of Khwaja Sahib.
He hesitantly protested and Khwaja Sahib told him, O! Shaadi. I can see the light of
Islam on your forehead. Testify that None is worthy of worship except the One True
God. He at once accepted Islam and was named Saadi. This created a stir amongst the
Hindus. Thousands now accepted Islam. The Hindu ruler now sent his greatest magician,
Ajaipal, to challenge Khwaja Sahib. After failing in many attacks on Khwaja Sahib he
finally flew into the air on a deerskin and asked Khwaja Sahib to better this feat. Khwaja
Sahib ordered his wooden sandals to fly up into the air and beat the head of Ajipal and
bring him down

We may think that these are fictitious stories. No! This is Islam and this is man acting in
his capacity as Khalifat-Allah36[18] actualised. . The goal of Islam is not to grope in the
dark. The Holy Quraan describes the function of Islam in Sura al-Baqara 2: Verse 257

Allah is the protecting friend of those who believe in Him genuinely


and He takes them out of darkness into the light
If the goal is to imbue ourselves with Divine Attributes- to become Khalifat-Allah
actualised then the natural function is interference. This interference by man is possible
on the lower level of physical science and at the higer level of spiritual science or
spirituality. The Khalifat-Allah as one totally submitted to Allah can do greater wonders
than the physical scientist.
Love to all and Malice to none, along with Service to humanity was the foundation
stone laid by Khwaja Muinuddin Chishti (Rahmatullahi alaihi) for the successful spread
of Islam in India. Representatives of Chishtia Order are working up to the present day on
the same line. Khwaja Saheb used great wisdom in presenting Islam to the people of
India. He Islamicised prevalent activities, in keeping with their culture, and presented
other enjoyable activities to them, especially designed to attract them to Islam.
Although music and singing popularly known as 'Sama' is not new to Sufis wherever they
are, Sultan ul-Hind, Gharib Nawaaz Khwaja Muinuddin Chishti specially arranged and
patronised these concerts to capture and mould the heart of his audience for accepting the
Divine Message gracefully. Thousands of Muslims and non-Muslims listen to it in rapt
attention wherever these Sufi functions are held by the representatives of Chishtia Order
and derive spiritual benefits. It is through these methods that the Sufis, slowly and
patiently, awaken the Spiritual Heart, to love Allah and Rasulullah (sallallahu alaihi wa
sallam), resulting in those astray coming to the straight path.
36[18] The God given innate ability to man to imbue himself with
Divine Attributes

Passing into the Realm of Divine Beauty


Khwaja Saheb passed into the realm of Divine Beauty on the 6 Rajab 633 AH/1233 AD at
the age of 97. On his passing he had the unique honour of knowing that 9.9 million had
accepted Islam in India due to his efforts.

Irshad Soofi
20 Rajab 1414
17 September 2003

STATUS OF A MARTYR AND THE "SPIRITUAL FELLOWSHIP"


Sura an-Nisaa 4: Verse 69

Those who submit to Allah and His Beloved Prophet (establishing harmony with them)
are blessed with the companionship (spiritual fellowship) of the Prophets, the Intensely
Truthful and Sincere (Servants of Allah), The Martyrs (who are Witnesses to Allah), and
the possessors of sound Godliness in general. Ah! What a beautiful companionship! This
is a bounty from Allah, and He suffices as Knower. (And because Allah affirms it, dont
question it.)
BEAUTIFUL COMPANIONSHIP
Islam did not come to have followers who are Muslim only in name, or ritualistically, or
from the point of view of certain Aqaid (principles of belief) which they may hold but
dont practice. Islam came to transform human beings in order that they may become
worthy of companionship of any of these four categories. I have to emphasize here that
faith in God and the Messenger of God is to be lived and not merely held. This Iman
(faith) should be a living, dynamic and consequential faith. The Holy Prophet has been

appointed by Allah as the Divine Instrument of purification of the personality (tazkiyah)


for all times.
Sura al-Jumu`ah 62: Verses2-4

It is He Who has sent amongst the Unlettered a messenger from among themselves, to
rehearse to them His Signs, to sanctify them, and to instruct them in Scripture and
Wisdom, although they had been, before, in manifest error; - As well as (to confer all
these benefits upon) others of them, who have not already joined them: and He is Exalted
in Might, Wise. Such is the Bounty of Allah, which He bestows on whom He will: and
Allah is the Lord of the highest bounty.
Those that have been blessed, to be in this Blessed Fellowship, among them the central
luminary being Muhammad (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam), the most excellent, Beloved of
God, (in whom Gods Choicest blessings abide in abounding measure), they also become
Gods Beloved, and acquire new properties (qualities). Their attitude in the transcendental
realm of existence is one of compassion, sympathy and kindness towards those that
remember them. To receive them however, it is necessary to rise up to the spiritual level,
where contact becomes possible. Associations with spiritualised personalities who are
physically present in this world, and with those on the transcendental dimension assist
man in attaining heights of spirituality.
This companionship means, e.g. if a piece of iron stays in the company of a magnet, it
becomes magnetized. It acquires new properties (qualities). Similarly if a gardener stays
in the company of fragrant flowers, he himself attains fragrance by being in touch with
the flowers. We pray to Allah daily for this spiritual companionship in Sura Fatiha.
ESTABLISHING SPIRITUAL CONTACT
Keeping this perspective in mind the question often emerges: God is Ever- Living,
Eternal and Omnipresent; hence communion with Him is possible. But the Messenger of
God and those categories mentioned were human beings who died a long time ago. How
can communication and establishment of intimate spiritual relation with them be
possible?
The Holy Quraan answers this misgiving very clearly:
Firstly, the human personality is not annihilated at death; it is transferred from one level
of existence to another with its Identity intact, -the life after death being a new life.
Secondly, the levels of existence after death are of a different quality, in the case of each
category of human beings, including Muslims. Thus about the martyrs it has been said:
Sura al-Baqara 2 Verse 154

And call not those who have been slain in the way of Allah dead. They are alive only you
cannot perceive them.
Sura al-i- Imraan 3: Verse 169 again speaks of the Martyrs:

Think not of those who are slain in the way of Allah, as dead. They are living. Allah
provides for them. They are jubilant because of what Allah has given them of His bounty,
rejoicing for the sake of those who have not joined them but are left behind: no fear have
they neither do they grieve. They rejoice because of favour from Allah and kindness, and
that Allah does not waste the wages of the Believers.
Hence the difference in quality of the life of the ordinary Muslim and the life of the
Martyr, after death is very clear. The Martyrs life after death is full of enjoyment and
activity and of attachment to those Muslims whom are left behind in their earthly
existence.
The word for martyr in Arabic is Shaheed, which is from the root sh-h-d. Many shades of
meaning can be inferred from this root: Mushahada: which means to witness or to receive
something. The martyr, according to traditional report (Hadith), at the time of martyrdom,
before the blood can drop on the ground, receives many bounties from Allah:
1. His sins are forgiven.
2.

Allah is pleased with him and gives him the blessings of the hereafter.

3.

He witnesses the beauty of Allah unveiled.

4.
His Ruh (essential being) is taken to the presence of Allah.
5.
Angels witness his martyrdom (mashud bil malaik.). It is recorded in the
authentic books of Hadith that, Hazrath Abdullah ibn Abbas had seen the Holy Prophet
(sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) in a dream during the period when Imam Hussain
(Radiallahu anhu) was martyred. Rasulullah (sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) told him that he
had witnessed the Shahaadat of Imam Hussain (Radiallahu anhu) and his followers. Thus
the Martyrdom of Imam Hussain is above all martyrdom since our Beloved Rasul
(sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) has witnessed it. (Mashud bir Rasul).
Irshad Soofi
Secret of Karbala
Allah Y says in the Holy Quraan in the 4th Sura, an-Nisaa, verse 96:

urdu
All who obey Allah Y and the Messenger e are in the Company of those on whom is the
Grace of Allah Y , of the Prophets , the sincere, the witnesses, and the righteous : Ah!
What a beautiful Fellowship!
Allah Y says in the Holy Quraan in the 4th Sura, an-Nisaa, verse 96:

Anyone who obeys Almighty Allah Y and His Messenger e

They will be in the company of those upon whom Allah Y showers blessings
Who are the blessed ones?

The Prophets

The testifiers

The martyrs

The pious that attain sainthood


Then the Holy Quraan says:

What beautiful companions these are!

Let me shed some light on this Beautiful Companionship before proceeding. Here the
Holy Quraan is prescribing a fellowship and companionship. Imam Hassan Basri t, used
to say to his disciples, before choosing a companion, assess whether his friendship will
benefit you on the Day of Judgment or not. In this light Allah Y says in the Holy
Quraan, in the 43rd Sura, al-Zukhruf, verse 67:

Friends on that Day will be foes, one to another; except the Righteous
All your friendships and associations based on the worldly values will terminate and be
of no use or benefit to you on the Day of Judgment. Only friendship of the Allah Fearing
(muttaqeen), who are the Awliya will benefit you on the Day of Judgment, so keep their
company and fellowship. This is the significance of Suhba37[1] .
So the Holy Quraan defines the categories of the blessed people, on whom is the Grace
of Allah Y, the Prophets, the sincere, the martyrs, and the righteous. These are the main
recipients of Allah Ys blessing. The foremost amongst the blessed are the Prophets
(Nabiyeen), the second are Testifiers to Truth (sidiqeen), the third are the martyrs
(shuhada) who sacrifice their lives for Allah Ys pleasure and for His Deen and fourthly,
the saints, the righteous (saaliheen) people blessed with Allah Y consciousness and piety
(taqwa).
All the good attributes, characteristics and blessings separately possessed by the various
blessed personalities are collectively possessed in the Blessed Personality of the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e. The Holy Prophet e possessed a comprehensive, all embracing
personality. Not a single blessing and blessed attribute that Allah Y sent from the time of
Hazrath Adam u and will send till the Day of Judgment was absent from the person of the
Holy Prophet Muhammad e. The great scholars and Imams (aimma) agree unanimously
on this. If any good attribute, character, quality of conduct, moral or anything does not
occur in the life of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e then it cannot be considered as a
blessing. The criterion of any attribute, character, quality of conduct, moral etc as to
whether it is a blessing and good is whether it was possessed by the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e. He e is the sole source of Allah Ys blessing. Whosoever got, is getting,
will get any blessing (nimah) acquires it from the Holy Court of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e. On the Day of Judgment also all blessing will emanate from him. This is
his charity (khairaat) from his store of abundance (Kauthar). It is stated in the collection
of Hadith in Sahih Bukhari that the Holy Prophet Muhammad e said,
Innama ana Qaasimun, wallahu yuti
I distribute Divine Blessings that Allah Y bestows upon me
37[1] Suhba: Companionship. This term applies most specifically to the
spiritual relationship between the Murshid and his murid. The basis of
such companionship is mystical conversation and communion, both of
which intensify as the murids heart becomes purified under the
Murshids guidance. It is a profound mutual love based on the Pure
Love of Allah Y.

The giver (yuti) is Allah Y and the distributor (qaasim) is the Holy Prophet Muhammad
e. This is the crux of our belief (aqaid). So whosoever wants anything from Allah Y, he
should become the beggar at the door of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. This Divine
Philosophy has been explained by Ala Hazrath, Maulana Shah Ahmad Raza Khan t, in the
verses:
Ba Khuda, Khuda ka yahi heh dar, nahi aur kohi mafar nakar
Joh waha se hoh yahi aah ke hoh, joh waha nahi toh yaha nahi
By God, this is the Court of Allah Y of Allah Ys blessings, there is no other means

Therefore Ala Hazrath, Maulana Shah Ahmad Raza Khan t has stated in another place:
Meh toh Malik hi kahoga keh heh Malik keh Habib
Mahboob o Muhib meh nahi mera tera
I will call him my Master (owner), because he is the Master's (owners) Beloved
Between the Beloved and the Lover there is no mine and yours.
So, all the good attributes, characteristics and blessings separately possessed by the
various blessed personalities are primarily possessed in the Blessed Personality of the
Holy Prophet Muhammad e. Thereafter it is distributed to others.
Prophethood is a blessing and some of Allah Ys chosen servants were made prophets,
from Hazrath Adam u to Hazrath Isa u. This prophethood is a blessing of the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e for it is acquired from him. One may ask as to where is this
mentioned? It is mentioned in the Holy Quraan in the 3rd Sura, Aal-i-Imraan, verse 81
and elaborated in the Hadith. It is mentioned in the Holy Quraan that Allah Y gathered
the souls of all Prophets in the World of Souls before the creation of this Temporal World,
and convened a meeting with them. Imam Al-Hafiz Ibn Hajar al-`Asqalani t has
mentioned the details of this meeting in his book al-Mawahib al-Ladunniyyah. He says
when the souls of the Prophets appeared before Allah Y there appeared a shining light
which illuminated the entire atmosphere. The prophets asked Allah Y regarding this light
and Allah Y told them this was the nur of his beloved Holy Prophet Muhammad e. They
enquired as to whom Holy Prophet Muhammad e was and Allah Y told them that he will
be sent as the last prophet and they would have to believe in his prophethood and pledge
allegiance to him to be blessed with prophethood.

Allah Y said:

Behold! Allah Y took the Pledge of the Prophets, saying: "I give you a Book and
Wisdom; then comes to you A Messenger, confirming what is with you; do you believe
him and render him help."
Every messenger had to bring faith on the Prophethood of Holy Prophet Muhammad e.
The president of one country is not bound to recognize the president of another country
for everyone possesses his own sovereignty. But all prophets were divinely instructed to
accept the supreme sovereignty of The Holy Prophet Muhammad e in the form of a
pledge and declaration that Allah Y witnessed.

Allah said: "Do ye agree, and take this my Covenant as binding on you?" They said: "We
agree." He said: "Then bear witness, and I am with you among the witnesses."
The sidiqeen or embodiments and witnesses to truth have also been blessed here for it is
stated:

The Holy Prophet Muhammad e will testify, so the sidiqeen have been given this as a
blessing of Holy Prophet Muhammad e.
As regards the Aulia (saaliheen) they attained piety, proximity and spiritual grace as a
blessing of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. They modeled themselves on his saintly life.
So every blessing was given to every category of the blessed people through the blessing
of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. Nabuwwah, Siddiqiat and saalihat was attained
through his blessing.
The question arises as to whom the martyrs received the blessing of martyrdom? The
Holy Prophet Muhammad e died a natural death so from who did the blessing of
martyrdom emanate? Apparently it seems that this blessing was lacking in the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e but actually it was not so. This is the secret of the martyrdom of
Imam Hussain t. Apparently it seems that the martyrs possess something the Holy

Prophet Muhammad e lacked but that cannot be. We believe that no partial superiority is
available to any of the Ummah as compared to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. All the
blessed people are small streams and he is the ocean. His hands are distributing blessings
to the world. Imam Sharfuddin Bosiri t says:

Wa kulluhum min Raslillhi multamisun


All the blessed received blessing from Rasulullah e

Gharfan minal bari aw rashfan minad diyami


(Like a) handful (of water) from the ocean or (a few) sips from continuous rains
All the prophets, truthful, martyrs and awliya stand before the door of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e and beg the blessing of Allah Y from him. Some may ask as to how people
beg at the door of Holy Prophet e since one should beg at the door of Allah Y? Have
they created a difference between the door of Allah Y and door of Holy Prophet e . There
is no duality. The beings are two but their door is one. Allah Y says , I will bless those
who become beggars at the door of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e.

Allah Y says in the Holy Quraan in the 2nd Sura, al-Baqara, verse 186:

When My servants ask you


Thus the first thing is to go to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e and ask him

Ask about Me
Even for Allah Y they have to go to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e let alone, other
blessings. Allah Y states that those who are His servants should beg at the door of Holy
Prophet Muhammad e for His being and blessings.

I am near those who become first your beggar


Allah Y resides in the hearts of the beggars of Holy Prophet Muhammad e. 52:14
Apparently the Holy Prophet Muhammad e could not be killed because Allah Y promised
him protection from the hands of the enemy. Allah Y says in the 5th Sura, al-Maida, verse
67:

And Allah Y will defend thee from men (enemy)


Thus none will be able to kill the Holy Prophet e. Therefore martyrdom was actually not
possible. The physical causes of martyrdom were present in his blessed life. Every act
possesses two aspects; abstract existence and physical appearance. Actions are the
physical appearance of salaah whilst remembrance of Allah Y is the abstract spirit.
The abstract form of martyrdom was present in the life of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e
but did not manifest physically due to the promise of Allah Y. The Holy Prophet e
desired to be martyred and the act to fulfill this desire did occur in his life. A person who
fights in the Muslim army out of compulsion, and to fulfill a government decree will not
be considered a martyr even if he is slain by the enemy, according to the shariah. The
acceptance of acts is according to the niyyah according to the first hadith recorded in
Bukhari. The Holy Quraan says that if the correct intention is prevalent and the act is not
undertaken, then the reward is given despite not performing the act.
Allah Y says in the 4th Sura, al-Nisaa, verse 100:

He who forsakes his home in the cause of Allah, finds in the earth many a refuge, wide
and spacious: should he die as a refugee from home for Allah Y and His Messenger e, his
reward becomes due and sure with Allah: and Allah Y is Oft-Forgiving, Most Merciful.
The intention to migrate, even if not completed is rewarded fully by Allah Y. So the
intention of martyrdom existed in the Holy Prophet e as per his dua recorded in Sahih
Bukhari to be martyred again and again.
The physical format of martyrdom is divided into two types:
1. Concealed Martyrdom (As-shahadate sirria) and
2. Exposed Martyrdom (As-shahadate jahria).
These are the implicit or hidden martyrdom and the explicit or open martyrdom.
Concealed Martyrdom (As-shahadate sirria) is mentioned in hadith e.g. poisoning etc.
The Exposed Martyrdom (As-shahadate jahria) is to be killed in battle. Both these existed
in the life of Holy Prophet Muhammad e but did not reach conclusion due to the promise
of Allah Y.
In the Battlefield of Khyber a Jewess gave the Holy Prophet Muhammad e poisoned meat
to eat. The companion with him died of the poison due to eating the meat whilst the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e ate but did not die. This was the commencement of the Concealed
Martyrdom (As-shahadate sirria) in his blessed life. The effects of this poison were
prevalent till his death. He was not killed by it but was not kept apart from its effect till
his death. In hadith literature it is recorded that prior to his demise he said to Hazrath
Aisha y, From the Day of Khyber I feel the effects of the poisoning.
The Exposed Martyrdom (As-shahadate jahria) had a commencement in his blessed life
but he did not die as a result of it. In the Battle of Uhad he fulfilled the formal
prerequisites but did not die as a result of it. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e was injured
and wounded and his tooth was broken. If the entire tooth had come off it would have
flawed his appearance and Allah Y would never allow this to happen to His Beloved,
Holy Prophet e. The tooth broke in such a way that it enhanced his beauty and shone
more brilliantly, like well shaped diamond.
Both these acts of martyrdom were completed, as per the Divine Plan in two personalities
carefully selected by Allah Y. The commencement of both had been in the personality of
Holy Prophet Muhammad e and would be fulfilled in these two personalities. These two
had to be linked to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e, being from his family and spiritually
linked to him. Allah Y would not permit an outsider to accomplish this feat for it would
indebt the Holy Prophet Muhammad e to their generosity. The two selected would have to

be literally a part of his body. The two personalities had been chosen thus Allah Y did not
allow his male children to see a mature age. The two chosen ones were Imam Hassan t
and Imam Hussain t. They were the sons of his beloved daughter, Hazrath Fatimah y.

About Hazrath Fatimah y the Holy Prophet e said:


Fatimatu budatu minni
Fatimah y is a piece of me
fa man azbabaha azbabani
Who displeases Fatimah y, has displeased me
Imam Haakim t has quoted a Hadith in al-mustadrik in which it is reported that the Holy
Prophet e says:
Inallaha yagzebu be gazbe Fatimah y ta wa yarda bi ridaiha
Allah Y is displeased when Fatimah y is displeased and is pleased when Fatimah y is
pleased
The important statement in this context being, Fatimah y is a piece of me. Thus the
children of Hazrath Fatimah y are a piece of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. The two
chosen ones had to resemble the Holy Prophet Muhammad e spiritually and physically.
There had to be external as well as internal similarity. This similarity was not possible for
outsiders.
Imam Hassan t and Imam Hussain t were genetically as well as spiritually connected to
the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. It is mentioned in many books of the sihah, including
Bukhari that Imam Hassan t was an exact physical copy of the Holy Prophet Muhammad
e from navel to head whilst Imam Hussain t was an exact physical copy of the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e from the navel to his feet. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e said
that Hazrath Fatimah y is the leader of the women of paradise whilst Imam Hassan t and
Imam Hussain t are the leaders of the youth of paradise. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e
also said that Imam Hassan t and Imam Hussain t are his two flowers in this world. He e
also said, Hassan and Hussain are my sons, those who love them, love me whilst those
who bear enmity towards them, bear enmity towards me. This statement elucidates the
spiritual similarity to Holy Prophet Muhammad e.

The Holy Prophet e held the hand of Hazrath Imam Hassan t and Imam Hussain t and
said:
Man ahabbani wa ahabba haazain
He who loves me and loves these two [Hazrath Imam Hassan t and Imam Hussain t]
Wa aba huma wa umma huma
And loves their father Ali t and their mother Fatimah Zahra y
Kana maifi darajati yaumul kiyaama
On the Day of Judgment they will be with me on my level
Very importantly the Holy Prophet Muhammad e also stated, Hassan and Hussain are
from me and I am from them. Hazrath Imam Hassan t and Imam Hussain t being from
the Holy Prophet Muhammad e we can understand but what does He e mean when he
says, I am from them? This reveals the secret of martyrdom. The implicit or hidden
martyrdom Concealed Martyrdom (As-shahadate sirria) and the explicit or open
martyrdom The Exposed Martyrdom (As-shahadate jahria) which began from my life will
attain completion from their lives. These were the mirrors that will mirror the blessing of
martyrdom from the Holy Prophet Muhammad e to show to the world.
Imam Hassan t was poisoned and his intestine came out of his blessed mouth in 70
pieces. This was the hidden shahadah of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. The open
shahadah which started at Uhad reached completion when Imam Hussain was martyred at
Karbala .
A tree bears fruit but the fruit never appears on the trunk, it appears on the branches. If
two branches of the same tree bear fruit, and one eats the fruit, one never says one ate the
fruit of the branch, but one says one ate the fruit of the tree. The fruit appears on the
branch but it is the fruit of the tree. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e is the tree of
prophethood and he had two branches. One branch was Imam Hassan t and the other was
Imam Hussain t. The branch of Hassan t bore the fruit of hidden shahadah whilst the
branch of Imam Hussain t bore the fruit of open shahadah. These fruit of the blessing of
shahadah are actually the fruit of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. Therefore the shahadah
of Imam Hussain t is a chapter of the seerah of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. Therefore
in spite of the fact that many companions were martyred but none of the martyrdoms
attained the popularity of the martyrdom of Imam Hussain t. Therefore all martyrdoms
were known after the incident whilst Imam Hussaints Martyrdom was publicized by the
Holy Prophet Muhammad e himself. Whilst watching Imam Hussain t playing the Holy
Prophet e was tearing. On enquiry as to why he was crying he said that Hazrath Jibraeel u
had informed him that people from his Ummah will martyr Imam Hussain t at a place
called Karbala and thereafter Jibraeel u gave him some sand of Karbala.
Umm Salama y the only wife of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e who was alive during the
tragedy of Karbala reports:
"The Holy Prophet e was asleep at my house one night and he woke up during the night
being visibly disturbed. He then told me that Jibraeel u had visited him and gave him
some sand and informed him that this is the sand of Karbala in Iraq where his beloved
Hussain would be martyred. He asked me to keep the sand safely and to know that when
it turns into blood that the martyrdom has occurred
This reflects the knowledge of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e for he knew she will be
the only surviving wife during the event of Karbala .

Imam ibn Kathir includes a hadith in his book al-bidaaya wal nihaaya that Abu Hurraira
t reported that he heard the Holy Prophet e warn, "O People! Supplicate to Allah Y! Save
me from the time of the end of 60 A.H. when young fools will sit on the throne of
leadership." When Hazrath Abu Hurraira t saw that Yazid was pressurizing Imam Hussain
t he realized this was the period prophesized by the Holy Prophet Muhammad e so he
prayed to Allah Y to take his life before he witnesses the full scale oppression. Thus he
died before witnessing Karbala .
Hazrath Ali t once while traveling through Iraq stopped at Karbala and said, "O People of
my caravan this is the spot where my son will be martyred".
The Holy Prophet e used to kiss Imam Hassan t on his lips and Imam Hussain t on his
neck. The Urafa have stated this was to give them a greater measure of patience.
Umm Salama y reports that on the day of Karbala she was asleep at noon when she
dreamt about the Holy Prophet e who informed her of the martyrdom of Imam Hussain t.
She cried and saw that the sand had turned red.
It is reported by Hazrath Abdullah ibn Abbas t:
On the day of Imam Hussain's Shahaadat I was asleep when I saw the Holy Prophet e in
my dream and I could see the effects of a journey on him. He then showed me a container
of blood and told me he had witnessed the martyrdom of Hussain t and his followers at
Karbala ."
It is reported that angels are present during Shahaadat (mashuud bin malaaik) as
witnesses. The difference between the Shahaadat of Imam Hussain t and other martyrs is
that whereas angels in general witness the martyrdom's; the martyrdom of Imam Hussain
t was witnessed by The Holy Prophet Muhammad e.
Imam Hussain t was informed of his martyrdom and where it would occur 50 years
before its occurrence. Those who say he fought for power are mistaken, misled and
misinformed.
May we live in the love of Ahle Bayt and die with their love
Irshad Soofi Siddiqui
January 29, 2007
Muharram 9, 1428

Karbala Today
Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) says in the Holy Quraan in the 2nd
Sura, al-Baqarah: Verses 154 to 157

154. And say not of those who are slain in the way of Allah' "They are
dead." Nay they are living though you perceive it not.
155. Be sure We will test you with something of fear and hunger, some loss in goods, lives and the fruits
(of your toil), but give glad tidings to those who patiently persevere, -

156. Who say, when afflicted with calamity, "To Allah we belong and to
Him is our return".
157. They are those on whom descend blessings from their Lord. And
Mercy, and they are the ones that receive guidance.

Recently the world population census revealed that there are


approximately 5 billion plus, people in the world. Europe and
America constitute 20% of the world population but they are holding
on to, by any means, fair or foul, 80% of the world's natural
resources. The west wishes to hold mankind in the grip of its power,
by imposing upon the rest of mankind its values, culture and
economy. The sensate culture of the West is in conflict with the
God rooted culture of the Divinely revealed religions of the World,
especially Islam.

The Global political presence of Muslims that have strong Islamic


values that transcend artificial borders and the retention of a global
culture and political identity are seen as a threat by the ruthless,
capitalist governments of the West, which today also includes
Russia. In Muslim majority countries, that are naturally rich in natural
resources, any attempts to establish an Islamic value system, are
termed as "fundamentalist" and "terrorist" and crushed by any
means. The reigning governments in the 50+ Muslim majority
countries of the world have to be western "puppet governments" or
the prevalent authorities will be directly opposed or elements within
that country will be funded to keep the country in the grip of instability
and poverty. Recent history, the genocide's and massacres in Bosnia,
Kosova, Chechnya and the continuing occupation of Afghanistan and
Iraq has made the fact, universally accepted to all sober thinkers, that
the west is determined to eradicate all remaining traces of
Genuine Islam, that threatens its unholy grip of Muslim Wealth and
lands.

Islam is viewed as being the only source of challenge to the


western capitalist domination of the world. This challenge indeed
exists as in the form of a widespread realization amongst Muslims
everywhere that they have to free themselves from the stronghold
that the west has acquired over them and Islam. A dynamic, vibrant,
living Islam left in peace will offer the world peace, security, moral
upliftment and economic and social justice. Bombs and technology will
not decide who wins, but the emergence of a superior civilization
will determine this.

It has become even more necessary, in these turbulent times to


relate to our children and youth born and being raised in the west,
or in western influenced environments that we tell them the story of
one of the greatest sacrifices in the history of mankind. It has to
be related so lessons may be learned from it.

Muharram, the first month of the Islamic Calendar, marks the concept
of emigration (Hijra) in the cause of Allah (Almighty and Glorious is
He). It is also sacred for many other reasons. Jews used to fast on this
day but Prophet Muhammad (Peace be upon him and his family)
advised Muslims to fast both ninth and tenth of Muharram. The Holy
Prophet (Peace be upon him and his family) has enumerated the
significance of this day in many Traditions (Hadith). He has stated that

Allah created the heavens, mountains, and oceans, pen (qalam) and
tablet (lawh) on this day. Hazrath Ibrahim (may Allah bless him with
peace) was born on this day, and Allah saved him from the furnace on
this day. Pharaoh was drowned, Allah relented towards Adam (may
Allah bless him with peace) Jesus or Isa (may Allah bless him with
peace) was born and The Day of Judgment (qiyama) will occur on this
day. In another tradition it is stated that, heaven, earth, stars,
heavenly throne (arsh), pedestal (kursi), tablet (lauh) and pen (qalam)
were created on this day. Gabriel (may Allah bless him with peace), all
angels and, Adam (may Allah bless him with peace) were created on
Ashura. The first rains and the first gift of mercy (rahmah) descended
on this day.

However, it is the Martyrdom of Imam Hussain (may Allah be well


pleased with him) and seventy-one members of his family and
associates which took place of this day at Karbala that we Muslims,
who love the Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him and his family)
remember most. Caliph Muawiya (may Allah be well pleased with him)
called for appointing his son Yazid to follow him. After Muawiya's death
his son Yazid declared himself the caliph starting an
unprecedented tradition. Imam Hussain (may Allah be well pleased
with him) took a stand against tyranny at the age of 56 years, on the
day of Ashura 61 AH. He gave the ultimate sacrifice of position,
family and life for the restoration of justice. It is a Day of triumph
over falsehood and a Day of the reaffirmation of a true Muslims
determination to make Jihad or strive against corrupt and un-Islamic
forces within or without its ranks as a first duty. The problem of the
Muslim Ummah on a global level is a real and living problem- it is
our Karbala today. Since March 3, 1924 (eighty years) we are
Muslims without a Caliphate, in which Allah is Sovereign. To accept the
monarchs and presidents as sovereign is an act of shirk. The huge oil
wealth of Arabia belongs to the world of Islam. The handing over of the
effective control of this oil wealth to the Americans is an act of treason.
Volumes can be written on the economic subordination of the Muslim
world.
Imam Jafar Saadiq (may Allah be well pleased with him)
proclaimed,

rightly

Every Day is Ashura and every place is Karbala.


We need to find and enforce a solution to our present degradation
and decline whether we are from Africa, The Indo-Pak Subcontinent, or
the Arab World. We have a population of over 1.2 Billion in the world
and yet we have no say in the International Affairs. The propaganda

machinery of the west has misrepresented Islam on a global level.


We need to enforce ways and means to counter this propaganda.
One method that can be enforced is to adapt and modify existing
functions and observances to serve the original spirit of
mobilizing the spirit and educating society as to how we can gain
the pleasure of Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) and serve the cause
of Islam.

Islam has produced numerous stars within the Galaxy of Prophets,


truthful, martyrs, and saints who illuminated the world when the forces
of darkness threatened. We have to reattach ourselves to this
fellowship and seek their guidance if we want success. Allah
(Almighty and Glorious is He) says in the 4th Sura, al-Nisa: Verse 69

Whosoever obeys Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) and His Messenger becomes the companion of one
of those upon whom Allahs blessings descend

Who are the recipients of Allahs blessings - there are four categories,
The Prophets, The Siddiqs - the embodiment of Truth, The Martyrs and
Saliheen or righteous who have attained the status of being Aulia
Allah. In the Islamic concept of Democracy the majority is not
necessarily right. We do not count heads but look at
competency and proximity to Allah and his Beloved Rasul
(Peace be upon him and his family) Equality does not mean physical
sameness. A thousand fools cannot be equal to a beloved of Allah.
Islam insists on duty and competency Imam Hussain (Radiallahu
anhu) represented truth, justice, purity, love, service and
sacrifice. Islamic democracy relies on the strength of argument whilst
western democracy is based on the argument of strength. The Holy
Qur'aan says in the 6th Sura, al-Anaam: Verse 163,

Say you, Undoubtedly, my prayer, and my sacrifices, and my living


and my dying are all for
Allah, Lord of the Universe."
A leader must have complete mastery over his animal self, seeking
neither power, position nor pleasure. Under the rule of the Yazidi
brand of Islam, enforcing a spiritless brand of Islam, devoid of
love and respect, the blood of a Hussain has to purify the Ummah.
Wahabbism and Capitalism are room-mates. When it is clear that the
rulers are not really functioning as servants of humanity as they were
supposed to. How does one to deal with the flagrant breach of
the divine trust?
The answer to this question is to be found in the Qur'aan which lays
down the ground rules of a clear-cut policy 4th Sura, al-Nisa: Verse 135

O believers! Stand firmly for justice, giving witness for Allah, even against yourself, or of your parents or
of your relations and whether it be against rich or poor: for Allah can best protect both."

The Qur'aan clearly declares in the 2nd Sura, al-Baqarah: Verses 191
that:

Their mischief is more grievous than killing

The tragic events of Karbala is an annual reminder to practice


Islam honestly and sincerely, to do what is right irrespective of
consequences, and fear none but Allah. To stand for the truth and fight
to the death is more honorable than submitting to the wrongful.

Irshad Soofi
January 20, 2004
Memoirs Of Mr. Hempher
The British Spy To The Middle East
PREFACE
Memoirs Of Mr. Hempher, The British Spy To The Middle East is the title of a document
that was published in series (episodes) in the German paper Spiegel and later on in a
prominent French paper. A Lebanese doctor translated the document to the Arabic
language and from there on it was translated to English and other languages. Waqf Ikhlas
publications put out and circulated the document in English in hard copy and
electronically under the title: Confessions of a British spy and British enmity against
Islam. This document reveals the true background of the Wahhabi movement which was
innovated by Mohammad bin Abdul Wahhab and explains the numerous falsehood they
spread in the name of Islam and exposes their role of enmity towards the religion of Islam
and towards prophet Mohammad (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) and towards Muslims at
large. No wonder the Wahhabis today stand as the backbone of terrorism allowing and
financing and planning shedding the blood of Muslims and other innocent people. Their
well known history of terrorism as documented in Fitnatul Wahhabiyyah by the mufti of
Makkah, Sheikh Ahmad Zayni Dahlan, and their current assassinations and contravention
is due to their ill belief that all are blasphemers save themselves. May Allah protect our
nation from their evils.
PART ONE

Our Great Britain is very vast. The sun rises over its seas, and sets, again, below its seas.
Our State is relatively weak yet in its colonies in India, China and Middle East. These
countries are not entirely under our domination. However, we have been carrying on a
very active and successful policy in these places. We shall be in full possession of all of
them very soon. Two things are of importance:
1- To try to retain the places we have already obtained;
2- To try to take possession of those places we have not obtained yet.
The Ministry of Colonies assigned a commission from each of the colonies for the
execution of these two tasks. As soon as I entered the Ministry of Colonies, the Minister
put his trust in me and appointed me the administrator of the company of East India.
Outwardly it was a company of trade. But its real task was to search for ways of taking
control of the very vast lands of India.
Our government was not at all nervous about India. India was a country where people
from various nationalities, speaking different languages, and having contrasting interests
lived together. Nor were we afraid of China, for the religions dominant in China were
Buddhism and Confucianism, neither of which was much of a threat. Both of them were
dead religions that instituted no concern for life and which were no more than forms of
addresses. For this reason, the people living in these two countries were hardly likely to
have any feelings of patriotism. These two countries did not worry us, the British
government. Yet the events that might occur later were not out of consideration for us.
Therefore, we were designing long term plans to wage discord, ignorance, poverty, and
even diseases in these countries. We were imitating the customs and traditions of these
two countries, thus easily concealing our intentions.
What frazzled our nerves most were the Islamic countries. We had already made some
agreements, all of which were to our advantage, with the Sick Man (the Ottoman
Empire). Experienced members of the Ministry of Colonies predicted that this sick man
would pass away in less than a century. In addition, we had made some secret agreements
with the Iranian government and placed in these two countries statesmen whom we had
made masons. Such corruptions as bribery, incompetent administration and inadequate
religious education, which in its turn led to busying with pretty women and consequently
to neglect of duty, broke the backbones of these two countries. In spite of all these, we
were anxious that our activities should not yield the results we expected, for reasons I am
going to cite below:
1- Muslims are extremely devoted to Islam. Every individual Muslims is as strongly
attached to Islam as a priest or monk to Christianity, if not more. As it is known, priests
and monks would rather die than give up Christianity. The most dangerous of such people
are the Shiites in Iran. For they put down people who are not Shiites as disbelievers and
foul people. Christians are like noxious dirt according to Shiites. Naturally, one would do
one's best to get rid of dirt. I once asked a Shiite this: Why do you look on Christians as
such? The answer I was given was this: "The Prophet of Islam was a very wise person.
He put Christians under a spiritual oppression in order to make them find the right way
by joining Allah's religion, Islam. As a matter of fact, it is a State policy to keep a person
found dangerous under a spiritual oppression until he pledges obedience. The dirt I am
speaking about is not material; it is a spiritual oppression, which is not peculiar to
Christians alone. It involves Sunnites and all disbelievers. Even our ancient Magian
Iranian ancestors are foul according to Shiites."
I said to him: "Well! Sunnites and Christians believe in Allah, in Prophets, and in the
Judgment Day, too; why should they be foul, then?" He replied, "They are foul for two

reasons: They impute mendacity to our Prophet, Hadrat Muhammad may Allah protect us
against such an act! (1)* And we, in response to this atrocious imputation, follow the rule
expressed in the saying, If a person torments you, you can torment him in return', and say
to them: 'You are foul.' Second; Christians make offensive allegations about the Prophets
of Allah. For instance, they say: Isaa (Jesus) 'Alaihis-salaam' would take (hard) drinks.
Because he was accursed, he was crucified."
In consternation, I said to the man that Christians did not say so. "Yes, they do," was the
answer, "and you don't know. It is written so in the Holy Bible." I became quite. For the
man was right in the first respect, if not in the second respect. I did not want to continue
the dispute any longer. Otherwise they might be suspicious of me in an Islamic attire as I
was. I therefore avoided such disputes.
2- Islam was once a religion of administration and authority. And Muslims were
respected. It would be difficult to tell these respectable people that they are slaves now.
Nor would it be possible to falsify the Islamic history and say to Muslims: The honor and
respect you obtained at one time was the result of some (favorable) conditions. Those
days are gone now, and they will never come back.
3- We were very anxious that the Ottomans and Iranians might notice our plots and foil
them. Despite the fact that these two States had already been debilitated considerably, we
still did not feel certain because they had a central government with property, weaponry,
and authority.
4- We were extremely uneasy about the Islamic scholars. For the scholars of Istanbul and
Al-adh-har, the Iraqi and Damascene scholars were insurmountable obstacles in front of
our purposes. For they were the kind of people who would never compromise their
principles to the tiniest extent because they had turned against the transient pleasures and
adornments of the world and fixed their eyes on the Paradise promised by Qur'aan alkereem. The people followed them. Even the Sultan was afraid of them. Sunnites were
not so strongly adherent to scholars as were Shiites. For Shiites did not read books; they
only recognized scholars, and did not show due respect to the Sultan. Sunnites, on the
other hand, read books, and respected scholars and the Sultan.
We therefore prepared a series of conferences. Yet each time we tried we saw with
disappointment that the road was closed for us. The reports we received from our spies
were always frustrating, and the conferences came to naught. We did not give up hope,
though. For we are the sort of people who have developed the habit of taking a deep
breath and being patient.
The Minister himself, the highest priestly orders, and a few specialists attended one of
our conferences. There were twenty of us. Our conference lasted three hours, and the
final session was closed without reaching a fruitful conclusion. Yet a priest said, "Do not
worry! For the Messiah and his companions obtained authority only after a persecution
that lasted three hundred years. It is hoped that, from the world of the unknown, he will
cast an eye on us and grant us the good luck of evicting the unbelievers, (he means
Muslims), from their centers, be it three hundred years later. With a strong belief and
long-term patience, we must arm ourselves! In order to obtain authority, we must take
possession of all sorts of media, try all possible methods. We must try to spread
Christianity among Muslims. It will be good for us to realize our goal, even if it will be
after centuries. For fathers work for their children."
A conference was held, and diplomats and religious men from Russia and France as well
as from England attended. I was very lucky. I, too, attended because I and the Minister
were in very good terms. In the conference, plans of breaking Muslims into groups and

making them abandon their faith and bringing them round to belief (Christianizing them)
like in Spain was discussed. Yet the conclusions reached were not as had been expected. I
have written all the talks held in that conference in my book "Ilaa Melekoot-il-Meseeh."
It is difficult to suddenly uproot a tree that has sent out its roots to the depths of the earth.
But we must make hardships easy and overcome them. Christianity came to spread. Our
Lord the Messiah promised us this. The bad conditions that the east and the west were in,
helped Muhammad. Those conditions being gone, have taken away the nuisances (he
means Islam) that accompanied them. We observe with pleasure today that the situation
has changed completely. As a result of great works and endeavors of our ministry and
other Christian governments Muslims are on the decline now. Christians, on the other
hand, are gaining ascendancy. It is time we retook the places we lost throughout
centuries. The powerful State of Great Britain pioneers this blessed task [of annihilating
Islam].
PART TWO
In the Hijra year 1122, C.E. 1710, the Minister of Colonies sent me to Egypt, Iraq, Hidjaz
and Istanbul to act as a spy and to obtain information necessary and sufficient for the
breaking up of Muslims. The Ministry appointed nine more people, full of agility and
courage, for the same mission and at the same time. In addition to the money, information
and maps we would need, we were given a list containing names of statesmen, scholars,
and chiefs of tribes. I can never forget! When I said farewell to the secretary, he said,
"The future of our State is dependent on your success. Therefore you should exert your
utmost energy."
I set out on a voyage to Istanbul, the center of the Islamic caliphate. Besides my primary
duty, I was to learn very well Turkish, the native language of the Muslims being there. I
had already learned in London a considerable amount of Turkish, Arabic (the language of
the Qur'aan) and Persian, the Iranian language. Yet learning a language was quite
different from speaking that language like its native speakers. While the former skill can
be acquired in a matter of a few years, the latter requires a duration of time several times
as long as this. I had to learn Turkish with all its subtleties lest the people should suspect
me.
I was not anxious that they should suspect me. For Muslims are tolerant, open-hearted,
benevolent, as they have learnt from their Prophet Muhammad 'alai-his-salaam'. They are
not skeptical like us. After all, at that time the Turkish government did not have an
organization to arrest spies.
After a very tiresome voyage I arrived in Istanbul. I said my name was Muhammad and
began to go to the mosque, Muslims' temple. I liked the way Muslims observed
discipline, cleanliness and obedience. For a moment I said to myself: Why are we
fighting these innocent people? Is this what our Lord the Messiah advised us? But I at
once recovered from this diabolical [!] thought, and decided to carry out my duty in the
best manner.
In Istanbul I met an old scholar named "Ahmed Effendi." With his elegant manners,
open-heartedness, spiritual limpidity, and benevolence, none of our religious men I had
seen could have equaled him. This person endeavored day and night to make himself like
the Prophet Muhammad. According to him, Muhammad was the most perfect, the highest
man. Whenever he mentioned his name his eyes would become wet. I must have been
very lucky, for he did not even ask who I was or where I was from. He would address me

as "Muhammad Effendi." He would answer my questions and treat me with tenderness


and with compassion, for he considered me a guest who had come to Istanbul to work in
Turkey and to live in the shadow of the Khalifa, the representative of the Prophet
Muhammad. Indeed, this was the pretext I used to stay in Istanbul
One day I said to Ahmed Effendi: "My parents are dead. I don't have any brothers or
sisters, and I haven't inherited any property. I came to the center of Islam to work for a
living and to learn Qur'aan al-kereem and the Sunnat, that is, to earn both my worldly
needs and my life in the Hereafter." He was very delighted with these words of mine, and
said, "You deserve to be respected for these three reasons." I am writing down exactly
what he said:
"1 You are a Muslim. All Muslims are brothers.
2 You are a guest. Rasulullah (Sallallahu alaihi wa sallam) declared: 'Offer kind
hospitality to your guests!'
3 You want to work. There is a Hadith shereef stating that 'a person who works is beloved
to Allah.' "
These words pleased me very much. I said to myself, "Would that there were such bright
truths in Christianity, too! It's a shame there aren't any." What surprised me was the fact
that Islam, such a noble religion as it was, was being degenerated in the hands of these
conceited people who were quite unaware of what was going on in life.
I said to Ahmed Effendi that I wanted to learn Qur'aan al-kereem. He replied that he
would teach me with pleasure, and began to teach me (Fatiha soora). He would explain
the meanings as we read. I had great difficulty pronouncing some words. In two years'
time I read through the whole Qur'aan al-kereem. Before each lesson he would make
ablution himself and also command me to make ablution. He would sit towards the
Qiblah (Kaaba) and then begin teaching.
What Muslims call ablution consisted of a series of washings, as follows:
1) Washing the face;
2) Washing the right arm from fingers to elbows;
3) Washing the left arm from fingers to elbows;
4) Making masah of (moistening both hands and rubbing them gently on) the head, backs
of ears, (back of) neck;
5) Washing both feet.
Having to use the miswaak vexed me very much. "Miswaak" is a twig with which they
(Muslims) clean their mouth and teeth. I thought this piece of wood was harmful for the
mouth and teeth. Sometimes it would hurt my mouth and cause bleeding. Yet I had to use
it. For, according to them, using the "miswaak" was a muakkad sunnat of the Prophet.
They said this wood was very useful. Indeed, the bleeding of my teeth came to an end.
And the foul breath that I had till that time, and which most British people have, was
gone.
During my stay in Istanbul I spent the nights in a room I had rented from a man
responsible for the service in a mosque. This servant's name was "Marwaan Efendi".
Marwaan is the name of one of the Sahaba (Companions) of the Prophet Muhammad.
The servant was a very nervous man. He would boast about his name and tell me that if I
should have a son in the future I should "name him Marwaan, because Marwaan is one of
Islam's greatest warriors."
"Marwaan Efendi" would prepare the evening dinner. I would not go to work on Friday, a
holiday for Muslims. On the other days of the week I worked for a carpenter named
Khalid, being paid on a weekly basis. Because I worked part time, from morning till

noon, that is, he would give me half the wage he gave the other employees. This
carpenter would spend much of his free time telling about the virtues of "Khalid bin
Waleed." Khalid bin Waleed, one of the Sahaba of the Prophet Muhammad, is a great
mujaahid (a warrior for Islam). He accomplished various Islamic conquests. Yet his
(Khaalid bin Waleed's) dismissal from office by 'Umar bin Hattaab during the latter's
caliphate chafed the carpenter's heart(2)*.
"Khalid", the carpenter for whom I worked, was an immoral and extremely neurotic
person. He somehow trusted me very much. I do not know why, but perhaps it was
because I always obeyed him. He ignored the Sharee'at (Islams commandments) in his
secret manners. Yet when he was with his friends he would display obedience to the
commandments of the Shariah. He would attend the Friday prayers, but I am not sure
about the other (daily) prayers.
I would have breakfast in the shop. After work I would go to the mosque for noon prayer
and would stay there till afternoon prayer. After the afternoon prayer I would go to
Ahmed Efendi's place, where he would teach me such lessons as (reading) Qur'aan alkereem, Arabic and Turkish languages for two hours. Every Friday I would give him my
weekly earnings because he taught me very well. Indeed, he taught me very well how to
read Qur'aan al-kereem, requirements of the Islamic religion and the subtleties of Arabic
and Turkish languages.
When "Ahmed Efendi" knew that I was single, he wanted to marry me to one of his
daughters. I refused his offer. But he insisted, saying that marriage is a sunnat of the
Prophet's and the Prophet had stated that "A person who turns away from my sunnat is
not with me." Apprehending that this event might put an end to our personal dealings, I
had to lie to him, saying that I lacked sexual power. Thus I ensured the continuance of our
acquaintance and friendship.
When my two-year stay in Istanbul was over, I told "Ahmed Efendi" I wanted to go back
home. He said, "No, don't go. Why are you going? You can find anything you might look
for in Istanbul. Allaahu ta'aalaa has given both the religion and the world at the same time
in this city. You say that your parents are dead and you have no brothers or sisters. Why
don't you settle down in Istanbul?..." "Ahmed Efendi" had formed a compulsive
dependence upon my company. For this reason he did not want to part company with me
and insisted that I should make my home in Istanbul. But my patriotic sense of duty
compelled me to go back to London, to deliver a detailed report concerning the center of
the caliphate, and to take new orders.
Throughout my stay in Istanbul I sent reports of my observations monthly to the Ministry
of Colonies. I remember asking in one of my reports what I was to do should the person I
was working for ask me to practice sodomy with him. The reply was: You can do it if it
will help you attain your goal. I was very much indignant over this answer. I felt as if the
whole world had fallen down on my head. I already knew that this vicious deed was very
common in England. Yet it had never occurred to me that my superiors would command
me to commit it. What could I do? I had no other way than to empty the drug to the dregs.
So I kept quiet and went on with my duty.
As I said farewell to "Ahmed Efendi", his eyes became wet and he said to me, "My son!
May Allaahu ta'aalaa be with you! If you should come back to Istanbul and see that I am
dead, remember me. Say the (soora) Faatiha for my soul! We will meet on the Judgment
Day in front of 'Rasulullah'." Indeed, I felt very sad, too; so much so that I shed warm
tears. However, my sense of duty was naturally stronger.

PART THREE
My friends had returned to London before I did and they had already received new
commands from the Ministry. I, too, was given new commands upon returning.
Unfortunately, only six of us were back.
One of the other four people, the secretary said, had become a Muslim and remained in
Egypt. Yet the secretary was still glad because, he said, he (the person who had remained
in Egypt) had not betrayed any secrets. The second one had gone to Russia and remained
there. He was Russian in origin. The secretary was very sorry about him, not because he
had gone back to his homeland, but because perhaps he had been spying on the Ministry
of Colonies for Russia and had gone back home because his mission had been over. The
third one, as the secretary related, had died of plague in a town named "Imara" in the
neighborhood of Baghdad. The fourth person had been traced by the Ministry up to the
city of San'aa in the Yemen and they had received his reports for one year, and thereafter
his reporting had come to an end and no trail of him had been found despite all sorts of
efforts. The Ministry put down the disappearance of these four men as a catastrophe, for
we are a nation with great duties versus a small population. We therefore do very fine
calculations on every man.
After a few of my reports, the secretary held a meeting to scrutinize the reports given by
four of us. When my friends submitted their reports pertaining to their tasks, I, too,
submitted my report. They took some notes from my report. The Minister, the secretary,
and some of those who attended the meeting praised my work. Nevertheless I was the
third best. My friend George Belcoude won the first grade, and "Henry Fanse" was the
second best.
I had doubtlessly been greatly successful in learning Turkish and Arabic languages, the
Qur'aan and the Shariah. Yet I had not managed to prepare for the Ministry a report
revealing the weak aspects of the Ottoman Empire. After the two-hour meeting, the
secretary asked me the reason for my failure. I said, "My essential duty was to learn
languages and the Qur'aan and the Shariah. I could not spare time for anything in
addition. But I shall please you this time if you trust me." The secretary said I was
certainly successful but he wished I had won the first grade. (And he went on):
"O Hempher, your next mission comprises these two tasks:
1 To discover Muslims' weak points and the points through which we can enter their
bodies and disjoin their limbs. Indeed, this is the way to beat the enemy.
2 The moment you have detected these points and done what I have told you to, [in other
words, when you manage to sow discord among Muslims and set them at loggerheads
with one another], you will be the most successful agent and earn a medal from the
Ministry."
I stayed in London for six months. I married my paternal first cousin, "Maria Shvay". At
that time I was 22 years old, and she was 23. "Maria Shvay was a very pretty girl, with
average intelligence and an ordinary cultural background. The happiest and the most
cheerful days of my life were those that I spent with her. My wife was pregnant. We were
expecting our new guest, when I received the message containing the order that I should
leave for Iraq.
Receiving this order at a time while I was awaiting the birth of my son made me sad.
However, the importance I attached to my country, doubled with my ambition to attain
fame by being chosen the best one among my colleagues, was above my emotions as a
husband and as a father. So I accepted the task without hesitation. My wife wanted me to

postpone the mission till after the child's birth. Yet I ignored what she said. We were both
weeping as we said farewell to each other. My wife said, "Don't stop writing to me! I
shall write you letters about our new home, which is as valuable as gold." These words of
hers stirred up storms in my heart. I almost cancelled the travel. Yet I managed to take
control of my emotions. Extending my farewell to her, I left for the ministry to receive
the final instructions.
Six months later I found myself in the city of Basra, Iraq. The city people were partly
Sunnite and partly Shiite. Basra was a city of tribes with a mixed population of Arabs,
Persians and a relatively small number of Christians. It was the first time in my life that I
met with the Persians. By the way, let me touch upon Shi'ism and Sunnism.
Shiites say that they follow 'Ali bin Abu Taalib, who was the husband of Muhammad's
'alaihis-salaam' daughter Faatima and at the same time Muhammad's 'alaihis-salaam'
paternal first cousin. They say that Muhammad 'alaihis-salaam' appointed Ali, and the
twelve imams, 'Alis descendants to succeed him as the Khalifa.
In my opinion, the Shi'as are right in the matter pertaining to the caliphate of 'Alee,
Hasan, and Huseyn. For, as far as I understand from the Islamic history, Alee was a
person with the distinguished and high qualifications required for caliphate. Nor do I find
it alien for Muhammad 'alaihis-salaam' to have appointed Hasan and Huseyn as
Khaleefas. What makes me suspect, however, is Muhammad's 'alaihis-salaam' having
appointed Huseyn's son and eight of his grandsons as Khaleefas. For Huseyn was a child
at Muhammad's 'alaihis-salaam' death. How did he know he would have eight grandsons?
If Muhammad 'alaihis-salaam' was really a Prophet, it was possible for him to know the
future by being informed by Allaahu ta'aalaa, as the Messiah had divined about the
future. Yet Muhammad's 'alaihis-salaam' Prophethood is a matter of doubt to us
Christians.
Muslims say, "There are many proofs for Muhammad's 'alaihis-salaam' Prophethood. One
of them is the Qur'aan (Koran)." I have read the Qur'aan. Indeed, it is a very high book. It
is even higher than the Torah (Torah) and the Bible. For it contains principles,
regulations, moral rules, etc.
It has been a wonder to me how an illiterate person such as Muhammad 'alaihis-salaam'
could have brought such a lofty book, and how could he have had all those moral,
intellectual and personal qualifications which could not be possessed even by a man who
has read and travelled very much. I wonder if these facts were the proofs for
Muhammad's 'alaihis-salaam' Prophethood?
I always made observations and research in order to elicit the truth about Muhammad's
'alaihis-salaam' Prophethood. Once I brought out my interest to a priest in London. His
answer was fanatical and obdurate, and was not convincing at all. I asked Ahmed Efendi
several times when I was in Turkey, yet I did not receive a satisfactory answer from him,
either. To tell the truth, I avoided asking Ahmed Efendi questions directly related to the
matter lest they should become suspicious about my espionage.
I think very much of Muhammad 'alaihis-salaam'. No doubt, he is one of Allah's Prophets
about whom we have read in books. Yet, being a Christian, I have not believed in his
Prophethood yet. It is doubtless that he was very much superior to geniuses.
The Sunnites, on the other hand, say that "After the Prophet's passing away, Muslims
considered Aboo Bekr and 'Umar and 'Uthmaan and 'Alee suitable for the caliphate."
Controversies of this sort exist in all religions, most abundantly in Christianity. Since
both 'Umar and 'Alee are dead today, maintaining these controversies would serve no

useful purpose. To me, if Muslims are reasonable, they should think of today, not of those
very old days(3)*.
One day in the Ministry of Colonies I made a reference to the difference between the
Sunnites and the Shiites, saying, "If Muslims knew something about life, they would
resolve this Shiite-Sunnite difference among themselves and come together." Someone
interrupted me and remonstrated, "Your duty is to provoke this difference, not to think of
how to bring Muslims together."
Before I set out for my travel to Iraq, the secretary said, "O Hempher, you should know
that there has been natural differences among human beings since God created Abel and
Cain. These controversies shall continue until the return of the Messiah. So is the case
with racial, tribal, territorial, national, and religious controversies.
"Your duty this time is to diagnose these controversies well and to report to the ministry.
The more successful you are in aggravating the differences among Muslims the greater
will be your service to England.
"We, the English people, have to make mischief and arouse schism in all our colonies in
order that we may live in welfare and luxury. Only by means of such instigations will we
be able to demolish the Ottoman Empire. Otherwise, how could a nation with a small
population bring another nation with a greater population under its sway? Look for the
mouth of the chasm with all your might, and get in as soon as you find it. You should
know that the Ottoman and Iranian Empires have reached the nadir of their lives.
Therefore, your first duty is to instigate the people against the administration! History has
shown that 'The source of all sorts of revolutions is public rebellions.' When the unity of
Muslims is broken and the common sympathy among them is impaired, their forces will
be dissolved and thus we shall easily destroy them."
PART FOUR
When I arrived in Basra, I settled in a mosque. The imaam of the mosque was a Sunnite
person of Arabic origin named Shaikh 'Umar Taaee. When I met him I began to chat with
him. Yet he suspected me at the very beginning and subjected me to a shower of
questions. I managed to survive this dangerous chat as follows: "I am from Turkey's Igdir
region. I was a disciple of Ahmed Efendi of Istanbul. I worked for a carpenter named
Khaali (Haalid)." I gave him some information about Turkey, which I had acquired
during my stay there. Also, I said a few sentences in Turkish. The imaam made an eye
signal to one of the people there and asked him if I spoke Turkish correctly. The answer
was positive. Having convinced the imaam, I was very happy. Yet I was wrong. For a few
days later, I saw to my disappointment that the imaam suspected that I was a Turkish spy.
Afterwards, I found out that there was some disagreement and hostility between him and
the governor appointed by the (Ottoman) Sultan.
Having been compelled to leave Shaikh 'Umar Efendi's mosque, I rented a room in an inn
for travellers and foreigners and moved there. The owner of the inn was an idiot named
Murshid Efendi. Every morning he would disturb me by knocking hard at my door to
wake me up as soon as the adhaan for morning prayer was called. I had to obey him. So I
would get up and perform the morning prayer. Then he would say, "You shall read
Qur'aan-al kereem after morning prayer." When I told him that it was not fard (an act
commanded by Islam) to read Qur'aan al-kereem and asked him why he should insist so
much, he would answer, "Sleeping at this time of day will bring poverty and misfortune
to the inn and the inmates." I had to carry out this command of his. For he said otherwise

he would send me out of the inn. Therefore, as soon as the adhaan was called, I would
perform morning prayer and then read Qur'aan al-kereem for one hour.
One day Murshid Efendi came to me and said, "Since you rented this room misfortunes
have been befalling me. I put it down to your ominousness. For you are single. Being
single (unmarried) portends ill omen. You shall either get married or leave the inn." I told
him I did not have property enough to get married. I could not tell him what I had told
Ahmed Efendi. For Murshid Efendi was the kind of person who would undress me and
examine my genitals to see whether I was telling the truth.
When I said so, Murshid Efendi reproved me, saying, "What a weak belief you have!
Haven't you read Allah's aayat purporting, If they are poor, Allaahu ta'aalaa will make
them rich with His kindness'?" I was stupefied. At last I said, "All right, I shall get
married. But are you ready to provide the necessary money? Or can you find a girl who
will cost me little?"
After reflecting for a while, Murshid Efendi said, "I don't care! Either get married by the
beginning of Rajab month, or leave the inn." There were only twenty-five days before the
beginning of the month of Rajab.
Incidentally, let me mention the Arabic months; Muharram, Safar, Rabi'ul-awwal,
Rabi'ul-aakhir, Jemaaziy-ul-awwal, Jemaaziy-ul-aakhir, Rajab, Sha'baan, Ramadaan,
Shawwaal, Zilqa'da, Zilhijja. Their months are neither more than thirty days, nor below
twenty-nine. They are based on lunar calculations.
Taking a job as an assistant to a carpenter, I left Murshid Efendi's inn. We made an
agreement on a very low wage, but my lodging and food were to be at the employer's
expense. I moved my belongings to the carpenter's shop well before the month of Rajab.
The carpenter was a manly person. He treated me as if I were his son. He was a Shiite
from Khorassan, Iran, and his name was Abd-ur- Ridaa. Taking the advantage of his
company, I began to learn Persian. Every afternoon Iranian Shiites would meet at his
place and talk on various subjects from politics to economy. Most often than not they
would speak ill of their own government and also of the Khaleefa in Istanbul. Whenever
a stranger came in they would change the subject and begin to talk on personal matters.
They trusted me very much. However, as I found out later on, they though I was an
Azerbaijani because I spoke Turkish.
From time to time a young man would call at our carpenter's shop. His attirement was
that of a student doing scientific research, and he understood Arabic, Persian, and
Turkish. His name was Muhammad bin Abd-ul-wahhaab Najdee. This youngster was an
extremely rude and very nervous person. While abusing the Ottoman government very
much, he would never speak ill of the Iranian government. The common ground which
made him and the shop-owner Abd-ur-Ridaa so friendly was that both were inimical
towards the Khaleefa in Istanbul. But how was it possible that this young man, who was a
Sunnee, understood Persian and was friends with Abd-ur-Ridaa, who was a Shi'ee? In this
city Sunnites pretended to be friendly and even brotherly with Shiites. Most of the city's
inhabitants understood both Arabic and Persian. And most people understood Turkish as
well.
Muhammad of Najd was a Sunnee outwardly. Although most Sunnites censured Shiites,
in fact, they say that Shiites are disbelievers this man never would revile Shiites.
According to Muhammad of Najd, there was no reason for Sunnites to adapt themselves
to one of the four madh-habs; he would say, "Allah's Book does not contain any evidence
pertaining to these madh-habs." He purposefully ignored the aayet-i-kereemas in this
subject and slighted the hadeeth-i-shereefs.

Concerning the matter of four madh-habs: A century after the death of their Prophet
Muhammad 'alaihis- salaam', four scholars came forward from among Sunnite Muslims:
Aboo Haneefa, Ahmad bin Hanbal, Maalik bin Anas, and Muhammad bin Idris Shaafi'ee.
Some Khaleefas forced the Sunnites to imitate one of these four scholars. They said no
one except these four scholars could do ijtihaad in Qur'aan al-kereem or in the Sunna.
This movement closed the gates of knowledge and understanding to Muslims. This
prohibition of ijtihaad is considered to have been the reason for Islam's standstill.
Shiites exploited these erroneous statements to promulgate their sect. The number of
Shiites was smaller than one-tenth that of Sunnites. But now they have increased and
become equal with Sunnites in number. This result is natural. For ijtihaad is like a
weapon. It will improve Islam's fiqh and renovate the understanding of Qur'aan al-kereem
and Sunna. Prohibition of ijtihaad, on the other hand, is like a rotten weapon. It will
confine the madh-hab within a certain framework. And this, in its turn, means to close the
gates of inference and to disregard the time's requirements. If your weapon is rotten and
your enemy is perfect, you are doomed to be beaten by your enemy sooner or later. I
think, the clever ones of the Sunnites will reopen the gate of ijtihaad in future. If they do
not do this, they will become the minority and the Shiites will receive a majority in a few
centuries.
[However, the imaams (leaders) of the four madh-habs hold the same creed, the same
belief. There is no difference among them. Their difference is only in worships. And this,
in turn, is a facility for Muslims. The Shiites, on the other hand, parted into twelve sects,
thus becoming a rotten weapon. There is detailed information in this respect in the book
Milal wa Nihal].
The arrogant youngster, Muhammad of Najd, would follow his nafs (his sensuous
desires) in understanding the Qur'aan and the Sunna. He would completely ignore the
views of scholars, not only those of the scholars of his time and the leaders of the four
madh-habs, but also those of the notable Sahaabees such as Aboo Bakr and 'Umar.
Whenever he came across a Koranic (Qur'aan) verse which he thought was contradictory
with the views of those people, he would say, "The Prophet said: I have left the Qur'aan
and the Sunna for you.' He did not say, I have left the Qur'aan, the Sunna, the Sahaaba,
and the imaams of madh-habs for you.' Therefore, the thing which is fard is to follow the
Qur'aan and the Sunna no matter how contrary they may seem to be to the views of the
madh-habs or to the statements of the Sahaaba and scholars."
During a dinner conversation at Abd-ur-Ridaa's place, the following dispute took place
between Muhammad of Najd and a guest from Kum, a Shiite scholar named Shaikh
Jawad:
Shaikh Jawad. Since you accept that 'Alee was a mujtahid, why don't you follow him like
Shiites?
Muhammad of Najd Alee is no different from 'Umar or other Sahaabees. His statements
cannot be of a documentary capacity. Only the Qur'aan and the Sunna are authentic
documents. [The fact is that statements made by any of the As-haab-i kiraam are of a
documentary capacity. Our Prophet commanded us to follow any one of them].
Shaikh Jawaad Since our Prophet said, "I am the city of knowledge, and 'Alee is its gate,"
shouldn't there be difference between 'Alee and the other Sahaaba?
Muhammad of Najd, If 'Alee's statements were of a documentary capacity, would not the
Prophet have said, "I have left you the Qur'aan, the Sunna, and 'Alee"?

Shaikh Jawaad Yes, we can assume that he (the Prophet) said so. For the stated in a
hadeeth-i-shereef, "I leave (behind me) Allah's Book and my Ahl-i-Bayt." And 'Alee, in
his turn, is the greatest member of the Ahl-i-Bayt.
Muhammad of Najd denied that the Prophet had said so.
Shaikh Jawaad confuted Muhammad of Najd with convincing proofs.
However, Muhammad of Najd objected to this and said, "You assert that the Prophet said,
I leave you Allah's Book and my Ahl-i-Bayt." Then, what has become of the Prophet's
Sunna?"
Shaikh Jawad. The Sunna of the Messenger of Allah is the explanation of the Qur'aan.
The Messenger of Allah said, "I leave (you) Allah's Book and my Ahl-i-Bayt." The phrase
'Allah's Book' includes the 'Sunna', which is an explanation of the former.
Muhammad of Najd. Inasmuch as the statements of the Ahl-i-Bayt are the explanations of
the Qur'aan, why should it be necessary to explain it by hadeeths?
Shaikh Jawaad When hadrat Prophet passed away, his Ummat (Muslims) considered that
there should be an explanation of the Qur'aan which would satisfy the time's
requirements. It was for this reason that hadrat Prophet commanded his Ummat to follow
the Qur'aan, which is the original, and his Ahl-i-Bayt, who were to explain the Qur'aan in
a manner to satisfy the time's requirements.
I liked this dispute very much. Muhammad of Najd was motionless in front of Shaikh
Jawaad, like a house-sparrow in the hands of a hunter.
Muhammad of Najd was the sort I had been looking for. For his scorn for the time's
scholars, his slighting even the (earliest) four Khaleefas, his having an independent view
in understanding the Qur'aan and the Sunna were his most vulnerable points to hunt and
obtain him. So different this conceited youngster was from that Ahmed Efendi who had
taught me in Istanbul! That scholar, like his predecessors, was reminiscent of a mountain.
No power would be able to move him. Whenever he mentioned the name of Aboo
Haneefa, he would stand up, go and make ablution. Whenever he meant to hold the book
of Hadeeth named Bukhaaree, he would, again, make ablution. The Sunnees trust this
book very much.
Muhammad of Najd, on the other hand, disdained Aboo Haneefa very much. He would
say, "I know better than Aboo Haneefa did." In addition, according to him, half of the
book of Bukhaaree was wrong.
[As I was translating these confessions of Hempher's into Turkish, I remembered the
following event: I was a teacher in a high school. During a lesson one of my students
asked, "Sir, if a Muslim is killed in a war, will he become a martyr?" "Yes, he will," I
said. "Did the Prophet say so?" "Yes, he did." "Will he become a martyr if he is drowned
in sea, too?" "Yes," was my answer. "And in this case he will attain more thawaab." Then
he asked, "Will he become a martyr if he falls down from an aeroplane?" "Yes, he will," I
said. "Did our Prophet state these, too?" "Yes, he did." Upon this, he smiled in a
triumphant air and said, "Sir! Were there aeroplanes in those days?" My answer to him
was as follows: "My son! Our Prophet has ninety-nine names. Each of his names stands
for a beautiful attribute he was endowed with. One of his names is Jaami'ul-kalim. He
would state many facts in one word. For example, he said, 'He who falls from a height
will become a martyr.' " The child admitted this answer of mine with admiration and
gratitude. By the same token, Qur'aan al-kereem and hadeeth-i-shereefs contain many
words, rules, commandments and prohibitions each of which denotes various other
meanings. The scientific work carried on to explore these meanings and to apply the right
ones to the right cases, is called Ijtihaad. Performing ijtihaad requires having profound

knowledge. For this reason, the Sunnees prohibited ignorant people from doing ijtihaad.
This does not mean to prohibit ijtihaad. After the fourth century of the Hegiral Era, no
scholars were educated so highly as to reach the grade of an absolute mujtahid [scholar
profoundly learned (enough to perform ijtihaad)]; therefore, no one performed ijtihad,
which in turn naturally meant the closure of the gates of ijtihaad. Towards the end of the
world, Isaa (Jesus) 'alaihis-salaam' shall descend from heaven and Mahdee (the expected
Islamic hero) shall appear; these people shall perform ijtihaad.
Our Prophet 'sall-allaahu alaihi wa sallam' stated, "After me Muslims shall part into
seventy-three groups. Only one of these groups shall enter Paradise." When he was asked
who were to be in that group, he answered, "Those who adapt themselves to me and my
Ashaab." In another hadeeth-i-shereef he stated, "My As-haab are like celestial stars. You
will attain hidaayat if you follow any one of them!" In other words, he said, "You will
attain the way leading to Paradise." A Jew of Yemen, Abdullah bin Saba, by name,
instigated hostility against the As-haab among Muslims. Those ignorant people who
believed this Jew and bore enmity against the As-haab were called Shi'ee (Shiite). And
people who obeyed the hadeeth-shereefs, loved and followed the As-haab-i-kiraam were
called Sunnee (Sunnite).]
I established a very intimate friendship with Muhammad bin Abd-ul-wahhaab of Najd. I
launched a campaign of praising him everywhere. One day I said to him: "You are greater
than 'Umar and 'Alee. If the Prophet were alive now, he would appoint you as his
Khaleefa instead of them. I expect that Islam will be renovated and improved in your
hands. You are the only scholar who will spread Islam all over the world."
Muhammad the son of Abd-ul-wahhaab and I decided to make a new interpretation of the
Qur'aan; this new interpretation was to reflect only our points of view and would be
entirely contrary to those explanations made by the Sahaaba, by the imaams of madhhabs and by the mufassirs (deeply learned scholars specialized in the explanation of the
Qur'aan). We were reading the Qur'aan and talking on some of the aayats. My purpose in
doing this was to mislead Muhammad. After all, he was trying to present himself as a
revolutionist and would therefore accept my views and ideas with pleasure so that I
should trust him all the more.
On one occasion I said to him, "Jihaad (fighting, struggling for Islam) is not fard."
He protested, "Why shouldn't it be despite Allah's commandment, 'Make war against
unbelievers.'?"
I said, "Then why didn't the Prophet make war against the munaafiqs despite Allah's
commandment, 'Make Jihaad against unbelievers and munaafiqs." [On the other hand, it
is written in Mawaahibu ladunniyya that twenty- seven Jihaads were performed against
unbelievers. Their swords are exhibited in Istanbul's museums. Munaafiqs would pretend
to be Muslims. They would perform namaaz with the Messenger of Allah in the Masjeedi- Nabawee during the days. Rasoolullah 'sall-allaahu alaihi wasallam' knew them. Yet he
did not say, " You are a munaafiq," to any of them. If he had made war against them and
killed them, people would say, "Muhammad 'alaihis- salaam' killed people who believed
in him." Therefore he made verbal Jihaad against them. For Jihaad, which is fard, is
performed with one's body and/or with one's property and/or with one's speech. The
aayat-i-kareema quoted above commands to perform Jihaad against unbelievers. It does
not define the type of the Jihaad to be performed. For Jihaad against unbelievers must be
performed by fighting, and Jihaad against munaafiqs is to be performed by preaching and
advice. This aayat-i-kereema covers these types of Jihaad].
He said, "The Prophet made Jihaad against them with his speech."

I said, "Is the Jihaad which is fard (commanded), the one which is to be done with one's
speech?"
He said, "Rasoolullah made war against the unbelievers."
I said, "The Prophet made war against the unbelievers in order to defend himself. For the
unbelievers intended to kill him."
He nodded.
At another time I said to him, "Mut'a nikaah is permissible."
He objected, "No, it is not."
I said, "Allah declares, In return for the use you make of them, give them the mehr you
have decided upon'."
He said, "'Umar prohibited two examples of mut'a practice existent in his time and said
he would punish anyone who practiced it."
I said, "You both say that you are superior to 'Umar and follow him. In addition, 'Umar
said he prohibited it though he knew that the Prophet had permitted it. Why do you leave
aside the Prophet's word and obey 'Umar's word?"
He did not answer. I knew that he was convinced.
I sensed that Muhammad of Najd desired a woman at that moment; he was single. I said
to him, "Come on, let us each get a woman by mut'a nikaah. We will have a good time
with them. He accepted with a nod. This was a great opportunity for me, so I promised to
find a woman for him to amuse himself. My aim was to ally the timidity he had about
people. But he stated it a condition that the matter be kept as a secret between us and that
the woman not even be told what his name was. I hurriedly went to the Christian women
who had been sent forth by the Ministry of Colonies with the task of seducing the Muslim
youth there. I explained the matter to one of them. She accepted to help, so I gave her the
nickname Safiyya. I took Muhammad of Najd to her house. Safiyya was at home, alone.
We made a one-week marriage contract for Muhammad of Najd, who gave the woman
some gold in the name of "Mehr." Thus we began to mislead Muhammad of Najd,
Safiyya from within, and I from without.
Muhammad of Najd was thoroughly in Safiyya's hands now. Besides, he had tasted the
pleasure of disobeying the commandments of the Sharee'at under the pretext of freedom
of ijtihaad and ideas.
The third day of the mut'a nikaah I had a long dispute with him over that hard drinks
were not haraam (forbidden by Islam). Although he quoted many aayats and hadeeths
showing that it was haraam to have hard drinks, I cancelled all of them and finally said,
"It is a fact that Yezeed and the Umayyad and Abbasid Khaleefas had hard drinks. Were
they all miscreant people and you are the only adherent of the right way? They doubtless
knew the Qur'aan and the Sunna better than you do. They inferred from the Qur'aan and
the Sunna that the hard drink is makrooh, not haraam. Also, it is written in Jewish and
Christian books that alcohol is mubaah (permitted). All religions are Allah's
commandments. In fact, according to a narrative, 'Umar had hard drinks until the
revelation of the aayat, 'You have all given it up, haven't you?" If it had been haraam, the
Prophet would have chastised him. Since the Prophet did not punish him, hard drink is
halaal." [The fact is that 'Umar 'radiy-allaahu anh' used to take hard drinks before they
were made haraam. He never drank after the prohibition was declared. If some of the
Umayyad and Abbasid Khaleefas took alcoholic drinks, this would not show that drinks
with alcohol are makrooh. It would show that they were sinners, that they committed
haraam. For the aayat-i-kereema quoted by the spy, as well as other aayat-i-kereemas and
hadeeth-i-shereefs, shows that drinks with alcohol are haraam. It is stated in Riyaad-un-

naasiheen, "Formerly it was permissible to drink wine. Hadrat 'Umar, Sa'd ibni Waqqas,
and some other Sahaabees used to drink wine. Later the two hundred and nineteenth
aayat of Baqara soora was revealed to declare that it was a grave sin. Sometime later the
forty-second aayat of Nisaa soora was revealed and it was declared, 'Do not approach the
namaaz when you are drunk!'" Eventually, the ninety-third aayat of Maaida soora came
and wine was made haraam. It was stated as follows in hadeeth-i- shereefs: "If something
would intoxicate in case it were taken in a large amount, it is haraam to take it even in a
small amount." and "Wine is the gravest of sins." and "Do not make friends with a person
who drinks wine! Do not attend his funeral (when he dies)! Do not form a matrimonial
relationship with him!" and "Drinking wine is like worshipping idols." and "May Allaahu
ta'aalaa curse him who drinks wine, sells it, makes it, or gives it."] ***
Muhammad of Najd said, "According to some narratives, 'Umar drank alcoholic spirits
after mixing it with water and said it was not haraam unless it had an intoxicating effect.
'Umar's view is correct, for it is declared in the Qur'aan, 'The devil wants to stir up enmity
and grudge among you and to keep you from doing dhikr of Allah and from namaaz by
means of drinks and gambling. You will give these up now, won't you?' Alcoholic spirits
will not cause the sins defined in the aayat when it does not intoxicate. Therefore, hard
drinks are not haraam when they don't have an intoxicating effect."
I told Safiyya about this dispute we had on drinks and instructed her to make him drink a
very strong spirit. Afterwards, she said, "I did as you said and made him drink. He danced
and united with me several times that night." From them on Safiyya and I completely
took control of Muhammad of Najd. In our farewell talk the Minister of Colonies had
said to me, "We captured Spain from the disbelievers [he means Muslims] by means of
alcohol and fornication. Let us take all our lands back by using these two great forces
again." Now I know how true a statement it was.
One day I broached the topic of fasting to Muhammad of Najd: "It is stated in the
Qur'aan, 'Your fasting is more auspicious for you.' It is not stated that fasting is fard (a
plain commandment). Then, fasting is sunna, not fard, in the Islamic religion." He
protested and said, "Are you trying to lead me out of my faith?" I replied, "One's faith
consists of the purity of one's heart, the salvation of one's soul, and not committing a
transgression against others' rights. Did not the Prophet state, 'Faith is love'? Did not
Allah declare in Qur'aan al-kereem, 'Worship thine Rab (Allah) until yaqeen comes to
thee? Then, when one has attained yaqeen pertaining to Allah and the Day of Judgement
and beautified one's heart and purified one's deeds, one will become the most virtuous of
mankind." He shook his head in reply to these words of mine.
Once I said to him, "Namaaz is not fard." "How is it not fard?" "Allah declares in the
Qur'aan, 'Perform namaaz to remember Me.' Then, the aim of namaaz is to remember
Allah. Therefore, you might as well remember Allah without performing namaaz."
He said, "Yes. I have heard that some people do dhikr of Allah instead of performing
namaaz.' I was very much pleased with this statement of his. I tried hard to develop this
notion and capture his heart. Then I noticed that he did not attach much importance to
namaaz and was performing it quite sporadically. He was very negligent especially with
the morning prayer. For I would keep him from going to bed by talking with him until
midnight. So he would be too exhausted to get up for morning prayer.
I began to pull down the shawl of belief slowly off the shoulders of Muhammad of Najd.
One day I wanted to dispute with him about the Prophet, too. "From now on, if you talk
with me on these topics, our relation will be spoilt and I shall put an end to my friendship

with you." Upon this I gave up speaking about the Prophet for fear of ruining all my
endeavors once and for all.
I advised him to pursue a course quite different from those of Sunnites and Shiites. He
favored this idea of mine. For he was a conceited person. Thanks to Safiyya, I put an
halter on him.
On one occasion I said, "I have heard that the Prophet made his As-haab brothers to one
another. Is it true?" Upon his positive reply, I wanted to know if this Islamic rule was
temporary or permanent. He explained, "It is permanent. For the Prophet Muhammad's
halaal is halaal till the end of the world, and his haraam is haraam till the end of the
world." Then I offered him to be my brother. So we were brothers.
From that day on I never left him alone. We were together even in his travels. He was
very important for me. For the tree that I had planted and grown, spending the most
valuable days of my youth, was now beginning to yield its fruit.
I was sending monthly reports to the Ministry of Colonies in London. The answers I
received were very encouraging and reassuring. Muhammad of Najd was following the
path I had drawn for him.
My duty was to imbue him with feelings of independence, freedom and skepticism. I
always praised him, saying that a brilliant future was awaiting him.
One day I fabricated the following dream: "Last night I dreamed of our Prophet. I
addressed him with the attributes I had learnt from hodjas. He was seated on a dais.
Around him were scholars that I did not know. You entered. Your face was as bright as
haloes. You walked towards the Prophet, and when you were close enough the Prophet
stood up and kissed between your both eyes. He said, 'You are my namesake, the heir to
my knowledge, my deputy in worldly and religious matters.' You said, 'O Messenger of
Allah! I am afraid to explain my knowledge to people.' 'You are the greatest. Don't be
afraid,' replied the Prophet."
Muhammad bin Abd-ul-Wahhaab was wild with joy when he heard the dream. He asked
several times if what I had told him was true, and received a positive answer each time he
asked. Finally he was sure I had told him the truth. I think, from then on, he was resolved
to publicize the ideas I had imbued him with and to establish a new sect.
PART FIVE
It was on one of those days when Muhammad of Najd and I had become very intimate
friends that I received a message from London ordering me to leave for the cities of
Kerbelaa and Najaf, the two most popular Shiite centers of knowledge and spirituality. So
I had to put an end to my company with Muhammad of Najd and leave Basra. Yet I was
happy because I was sure that this ignorant and morally depraved man was going to
establish a new sect, which in turn would demolish Islam from within, and that I was the
composer of the heretical tenets of this new sect.
'Alee, the fourth Khaleefa of the Sunnites, and the first one according to the Shiites, was
buried in Najaf. The city of Koofa, which was a distance of one fersah (league), i.e., an
hour's walk from Najaf, was the capital of 'Alee's caliphate. When 'Alee was killed, his
sons Hasan and Huseyn buried him outside Koofa at a place called Najaf today. In the
course of time, Najaf began to grow, while Koofa gradually fell into decay. The Shiite
men of religion came together in Najaf. Houses, markets, madrasas (Islamic schools and
universities) were built.

The Khaleefa in Istanbul was kind and generous to them for the following reasons:
1- The Shiite administration in Iran was supporting the Shiites. The Khaleefa's interfering
with them would cause tension between the states, which in turn could lead to warfare.
2- The inhabitants of Najaf included a number of armed tribes supporting the Shiites.
Although they did not have much significance in terms of weaponry and organization, it
would be unwise for the Khaleefa to run the risk of getting into trouble with them.
3- The Shiites in Najaf had authority over the Shiites all over the world, particularly those
in Africa and India. If the Khaleefa disturbed them, all the Shiites would rise against him.
Huseyn bin 'Alee, the Prophet's grandson, i.e., his daughter Faatima's son, was martyred
in Kerbelaa. The people of Iraq had sent for Huseyn in Medina and invited him to Iraq to
elect him their Khaleefa. Huseyn and his family were in the territory called Kerbelaa
when the Iraqis gave up their former intention and, acting upon the order given by Yazeed
bin Muaawiya, the Umayyad Khaleefa living in Damascus, set out with the intention of
arresting him. Huseyn and his family put up a heroic last-ditch fight against the Iraqi
army. The battle ended in their death, so the Iraqi army was the winning side. Since that
day, the Shiites have accepted Kerbelaa as their spiritual center, so that Shiites from all
over the world come here and form such a huge crowd that our religion of Christianity
does not have a likeness to it.
Kerbelaa, a Shiite city, contains Shiite madrasas. This city and Najaf support each other.
Upon receiving the order to go to these two cities, I left Basra for Baghdad, and thence to
a city named 'Hulla' situated alongside the Euphrates.
The Tigris and Euphrates come from Turkey, cut through Iraq, and flow into the Persian
Gulf. Iraq's agriculture and welfare are due to these two rivers.
When I was back in London, I proposed to the Ministry of Colonies that a project could
be drawn up to change the beds of these two rivers in order to make Iraq accept our
proposals. When the water was cut off, Iraq would have to satisfy our demands.
From Hulla to Najaf I travelled in the guise of an Azerbaijani tradesman. Establishing
close friendships with Shiite men of religion, I began to mislead them. I joined their
circles of religious instruction. I saw that they did not study science like the Sunnites, nor
did they have the beautiful moral qualities possessed by the Sunnites. For example:
1- They were extremely inimical towards the Ottoman State. For they were Shiites and
the Turks were Sunnites. They said that the Sunnites were disbelievers.
2- The Shiite scholars were entirely absorbed in religious teachings and had very little
interest in worldly knowledge, as was the case with priests during the period of standstill
in our history.
3- They were quite unaware of Islam's inner essence and sublime character, nor did they
have the smallest notion of the time's scientific and technical improvements.
I said to myself: What a wretched sort of people these Shiites are. They are sound asleep
when the whole world is awake. One day a flood will come and take them all away.
Several times I attempted to entice them to revolt against the Khaleefa. Unfortunately, no
one would even listen to me. Some of them laughed at me as though I had told them to
destroy the earth. For they looked on the Khaleefa as a fortress impossible to capture.
According to them, they would get rid of the caliphate with the advent of the promised
Mahdi.
According to them, Mahdi was their twelfth imaam, who was a descendant of Islam's
Prophet and who disappeared in the Hijree year 255. They believed he was still alive and
would one day reappear and rescue the world from this state of utter cruelty and injustice,
filling it with justice.

It is consternating! How come these Shiite people believe in these superstitions! It was
like the superstitious doctrine, "Jesus Christ will come back and fill the world with
justice," held by our Christians.
One day I said to one of them: "Isn't it fard for you to prevent injustice like the Islamic
Prophet did?" His reply was: "He managed to prevent injustice because Allah helped
him." When I said, "It is written in the Qur'aan, If you help Allah's religion, He will help
you in return.' "If you revolt against the torture of your shaahs, Allah will help you" He
answered, "You are a tradesman. These are scientific matters. You cannot understand
this."
The mausoleum of Alee the Emeer-ul-mu'mineen was profusely decorated. It had a
splendid yard, a gold-covered dome, and two tall minarets. Every day great numbers of
Shiites visited this mausoleum. They performed namaaz in jamaa'at in it. Every visitor
first stooped in front of the threshold, kissed it, and then greeted the grave. They asked
for permission and then entered. The mausoleum had a vast yard, which contained
numerous rooms for men of religion and visitors.
There were two mausoleums similar to that of 'Alee's in Kerbelaa. One of them belonged
to Huseyn and the other belonged his brother Abbaas, who had been martyred with him in
Kerbelaa. In Kerbelaa the Shiites repeated the same practices as they did in Najaf. The
climate of Kerbelaa was better than that of Najaf. It was surrounded with graceful
orchards and lovely brooks.
During my mission to Iraq I met with a scene that gave relief to my heart. Some events
heralded the end of the Ottoman Empire. For one thing, the governor appointed by the
administration in Istanbul was an uneducated and cruel person. He acted as he wished.
The people did not like him. The Sunnites were uneasy because the governor restricted
their freedom and did not value them, and the Shiites felt indignant over being governed
by a Turk while among them there were sayyeds and shareefs, the Prophet's descendants,
who would have been a much better choice for governorship.
The Shiites were in an utterly woebegone situation. They lived in squalid and dilapidated
environments. The roads were not safe. Highwaymen always awaited caravans, and
attacked whenever they saw that there were no soldiers escorting them. For this reason,
convoys would not set out unless the government would appoint a detachment to escort
them.
The Shiite tribes were mostly warlike with one another. They killed and plundered one
another daily. Ignorance and illiteracy were dreadfully widespread. This state of the
Shiites reminded me of the time when Europe had been under an ecclesiastical invasion.
With the exclusion of the religious leaders living in Najaf and Kerbelaa and a small
minority, who were their votaries, not even one out of every thousand Shiites knew how
to read or write.
The economy had collapsed entirely, and the people were suffering utter poverty. The
administrative system was quite out of order. The Shiites committed treasons against the
government.
The State and the people viewed each other with suspicion. As a result, there was no
mutual aid between them. The Shiite religious leaders, totally given to vituperating the
Sunnites, had already relinquished knowledge; business, religious and worldly alike.
I stayed in Kerbelaa and in Najaf for four months. I suffered a very serious illness in
Najaf. I felt so bad that I completely gave up hope of recovery. My illness lasted three
weeks. I went to a doctor. He gave me a prescription. Using the medicine, I began to
recover. Throughout my illness I stayed in an underground room. Because I was ill, my

host prepared my medicine and food in return for an insignificant sum of money and
expected great thawaab for serving me. For I was, so to speak, a visitor of 'Alee the
Emeer-ul-mu'mineen. The doctor advised me to have only chicken broth during the first
few days. Later on he permitted me to eat chicken as well. The third week I had rice soup.
After becoming well again I left for Baghdad. I prepared a report of one hundred pages
on my observations in Najaf, Hulla, and Baghdad and while on the way. I submitted the
report to the Baghdad representative of the Ministry of Colonies. I waited for the
Ministry's order on whether I should remain in Iraq or return to London.
I wished to go back to London. For I had been abroad for a long time. I missed my
homeland and my family. Especially, I wanted to see my son Rasputin, who had been
born after my departure. For this reason, I appended to my report a petition for
permission to return to London for a short time at least. I wanted to give an oral report of
impressions about my three years' mission in Iraq and to get some rest in the meantime.
The Iraq representative of the Ministry advised me not to call on him often lest I should
arouse suspicion. He also advised to rent a room in one of the inns alongside the Tigris
River, and said, "I shall inform you of the Ministry's answer when we receive the mail
from London." During my stay in Baghdad I observed the spiritual distance between
Istanbul, the capital of the caliphate, and Baghdad.
When I left Basra for Kerbelaa and Najaf, I was very much anxious that Muhammad of
Najd would swerve from the direction I had led him. For he was an extremely unstable
and nervous person. I feared that the aims I had built upon him might be spoilt.
As I left him he was thinking of going to Istanbul. I did my best to dissuade him from the
notion. I said, "I am very anxious that when you go there you may make a statement
whereby they will pronounce you a heretic and kill you."
My apprehension was quite the other way round. I was anxious that upon going there he
should meet profound scholars capable of setting his fallacies right and converting him to
the Sunnee creed and thus all my dreams should come to naught. For there was
knowledge and Islam's beautiful morality in Istanbul.
When I found out that Muhammad of Najd did not want to stay in Basra, I recommended
that he go to Isfahan and Sheeraaz. For these two cities were lovely. And their inhabitants
were Shiites. And Shiites, in their turn, could not possibly influence Muhammad of Najd.
For Shiites were inefficient in knowledge and ethics. Thus I made it certain that he would
not change the course I had charted for him.
As we parted I said to him, "Do you believe in Taqiyya?" "Yes, I do," he replied. "The
unbelievers arrested one of the Sahaaba and tormented him and killed his parents. Upon
this he made Taqiyya, that is, he said openly that he was a polytheist. (When he came
back and said what had happened), the Prophet did not reproach him at all." I advised
him, "When you live among the Shiites, make Taqiyya; do not tell them that you are
Sunnee lest they become a nuisance for you. Utilize their country and scholars! Learn
their customs and traditions. For they are ignorant and stubborn people."
As I left, I gave him some money as zakaat. Zakaat is an Islamic tax collected in order to
be dealt out to the needy people. In addition, I gave him a saddled animal as a present. So
we parted.
After my departure I lost contact with him. This made me utterly uneasy. When we parted
we decided that both of us were to return to Basra and whichever party was back first and
did not find the other party was to write a letter and leave it with Abd-ur-Reedaa.
PART SIX

I stayed in Baghdad for a time. Then, receiving the message ordering me to return to
London, I left. In London, I talked with the secretary and some officials of the Ministry. I
told them of my activities and observations during my long mission. They rejoiced
greatly at the information I gave about Iraq and said that they were pleased. On the other
hand, Safiyya, the girl friend of Muhammad of Najd, sent a report agreeing with mine. I
found out also that throughout my mission I had been followed by men from the Ministry.
These men also sent reports concurrent with the reports I had sent and with the account I
had given to the secretary.
The secretary made an appointment for me to meet the Minister. When I visited the
Minister, he met me in a manner that he had not shown towards me upon my arrival from
Istanbul. I knew that I occupied an exceptional place in his heart now.
The minister was very pleased to know that I had obtained Muhammad of Najd. "He is a
weapon our Ministry has been looking for. Give him all sorts of promises. It would be
worth while if you spent all your time indoctrinating him," he said. When I said, "I have
been anxious about Muhammad of Najd. He may have changed his mind," he replied,
"Don't worry. He has not given up the ideas he had when you left him. The spies of our
Ministry met him in Isfahan and reported to our Ministry that he had not changed." I said
to myself, "How could Muhammad of Najd reveal his secrets to a stranger?" I did not
dare to ask this question to the Minister. However, when I met Muhammad of Najd later,
I found out that in Isfahan a man named Abd-ul-kereem had met him and ferreted out his
secrets by saying, "I am Shaikh Muhammad's [meaning me] brother. He told me all that
he knew about you."
Muhammad of Najd said to me, "Safiyya went with me to Isfahan and we cohabited with
mut'a nikaah for two more months. Abd-ul-kereem accompanied me to Sheeraaz and
found me a woman named Asiya, who was prettier and more attractive than Safiyya.
Making mut'a nikaah with that woman, I spent the most delightful moments of my life
with her."
I found out later that Abd-ul-kereem was a Christian agent living in the Jelfa district of
Isfahan and working for the Ministry. And Asiya, a Jewess living in Sheeraaz, was
another agent for the Ministry. All four of us coordinated to train Muhammad of Najd in
such a way that in future he would do what was excepted from him in the best way.
When I related the events in the presence of the Minister, the secretary, and two other
members of the Ministry whom I did not know, the Minister said to me, "You have
deserved to receive the greatest award of the Ministry. For you are the best one among
the most significant agents of the ministry. The secretary will tell you some State secrets,
which will help you in your mission."
Then they gave me a ten-day leave during which I could see my family. So I went home
right away and spent some of my sweetest moments with my son, who resembled me
very much. My son spoke a few words, and walked so elegantly that I felt as if he were a
piece from my own body. I spent this ten-day leave so cheerfully, so happily. I felt as if I
were going to fly from joy. It was such a great pleasure to be back home, to be with my
family. During this ten-day leave I visited my old paternal aunt, who loved me very
much. It was wise of me to visit my paternal aunt. For she passed away after my
departure for my third mission. I felt so sad about her decease.
This ten-day leave elapsed as fast as an hour. Whereas cheerful days such as these go by
as quickly as an hour, days of grief seem to take centuries. I remembered the days when I
had suffered that illness in Najaf. Those days of affliction had seemed like years to me.

When I went to the Ministry to receive new orders, I met the secretary with this cheerful
face and tall stature. He shook my hand so warmly that his affection was perceptible. He
said to me, "With the command of our minister and the committee in charge of Colonies,
I shall tell you two State secrets. Later you will benefit very much from these two secrets.
No one except a couple of confidential people know these two secrets."
Holding my hand, he took me to a room in the Ministry. I met with something very
attractive in this room. Ten men were sitting around a round table. The first man was in
the guise of the Ottoman Emperor. He spoke Turkish and English. The second one was
dressed in the attire of the Shaikh-ul-islaam (Chief of Islamic Matters) in Istanbul. The
third one was dressed in an attirement identical with that of the Shah of Iran. The fourth
one was in the attire of the vizier in the Iranian palace. The fifth one was dressed like the
great scholar leading the Shiites in Najaf. The last three of these people spoke Persian and
English. Each of these five people had a clerk sitting beside him to write down whatever
they would say. These clerks were imparting to the five men the information collected by
spies about their archetypes in Istanbul, Iran, and Najaf.
The secretary said, "These five people represent the five people there. In order to know
what their archetypes think, we have educated and trained these people exactly like their
archetypes. We intimate the information we have obtained about their originals in
Istanbul, Teheran and Najaf to these men. And these men, in their turn, imagine
themselves to be their originals in those places. Then we ask them and they answer us.
We have determined that the answers given by these people are seventy-percent agreeable
with the answers that their originals would give.
"If you like, you may ask questions for assessment. You have already met the scholar of
Najaf." I replied in the affirmative, for I had met the great Shiite scholar in Najaf and
asked him about some matters. Now I approached his copy and said, "Dear teacher,
would it be permissible for us to wage war against the government because it is Sunnee
and fanatical?" He reflected for a while, and said, "No, it is not permissible for us to wage
war against the government because it is Sunnee. For all Muslims are brothers. We could
declare war on them (Sunnite Muslims) only if they perpetrated cruelty and persecution
on the Ummat (Muslims). And even in this case we would observe the principles of Amri-bi-l-ma'roof and Nahy-i-ani-l-munkar. We would stop interfering with them as soon as
they stopped their persecution."
I said, "Dear teacher, may I have your opinion concerning the matter that Jews and
Christians are foul?" "Yes, they are foul," he said. "It is necessary to keep away from
them." When I asked the reason why, he replied, "It is done so in retaliation for an insult.
For they look on us as disbelievers and deny our Prophet Muhammad 'alaihis-salaam'. We
therefore retaliate for this." I said to him, "Dear teacher, isn't cleanliness an issue of
eemaan? Despite this fact, the avenues and streets around the Sahn-i-shareef [the area
surrounding hadrat 'Alee's mausoleum] are not clean. Even the madrasas, which are the
places of knowledge, cannot be said to be clean." He replied, "Yes, it is true; cleanliness
is from eemaan. Yet it cannot be helped because the Shiites are negligent over
cleanliness."
The answers given by this man in the Ministry were precisely concurrent with the
answers I had received from the Shiite scholar in Najaf. Such accurate identity between
this man and the scholar in Najaf amazed me utterly. In addition, this man spoke Persian.
The secretary said, "If you had met the archetypes of the other four personages, you
would talk to their imitations now and see how identical they are with their originals."
When I said, "I know how the Shaikh-ul-islaam thinks. For Ahmad Efendi, my hodja in

Istanbul, gave a detailed description of the Shaikh-ul-islaam to me," the secretary said,
"Then you can go ahead and talk with his model."
I went near the Shaikh-ul-islaam's model and said to him, "Is it fard to obey the
Khaleefa?" "Yes, it is waajib," he replied. "It is waajib, as it is fard to obey Allah and the
Prophet." When I asked what evidence he had to prove this, he answered, "Didn't you
hear about Janaab-i-Allah's aayat, 'Obey Allah, His Prophet, and the Ulul amr from
among you'?" I said, "Does this mean that Allah commands us to obey the Khaleefa
Yazeed, who permitted his army to plunder Medeena and who killed our Prophet's
grandson Huseyn, and Waleed who drank alcoholic spirits?" His answer was this: "My
son! Yazeed was the Ameer-ul-mu'mineen with Allah's permission. He did not command
the killing of Huseyn. Do not believe in the Shiite lies! Read the books well! He made a
mistake. Then he made tawba for this (he repented and begged for Allah's forgiveness and
mercy). He was right about his ordering Medina-i-munawwara plundered. For the
inhabitants of Medina had become quite unbridled and disobedient. As for Waleed; yes,
he was a sinner. It is waajib not to imitate the Khaleefa, but to obey his commandments
compatible with the Sharee'at." I had asked these same questions to my hodja Ahmed
Efendi and received identical answers with slight differences. Then I asked the secretary,
"What are the ultimate reasons for preparing these models?" He said, "With this method
we are assessing the mental capacities of the (Ottoman) Sultan and the Muslim scholars,
be they Shi'ee or Sunnee. We are searching for the measures that will help us cope with
them. For instance, if you know what direction the enemy forces will come from, you
will make preparations accordingly, post your forces at suitable positions, and thus rout
the enemy. On the other hand, if you aren't sure about the direction of the enemy assault
you will spread your forces here and there in a haphazard way and suffer a defeat. ... By
the same token, if you know the evidences Muslims will furnish to prove that their faith,
their madh-hab is right, it will be possible for you to prepare the counter-evidences to
rebut their evidences and shock their belief with those counter-evidences."
Then he gave me a book of one thousand pages containing the results of the observations
and projects carried out by the aforenamed five representative men in areas such as
military, finance, education, and religion. He said, "Please read this book and return it to
us." I took the book home with me. I read through it with utmost attention during my
three-week holiday.
The book was of a wonderful sort. For the important answers and the delicate
observations it contained sounded genuine. I think that the answers given by the
representative five men were more than seventy percent agreeable with the answers that
their archetypes would have given. Indeed, the secretary had said that the answers were
seventy percent correct.
Having read the book, I now had more confidence in my State and I knew for certain that
the plans for demolishing the Ottoman Empire in time shorter than a century had already
been prepared. The secretary also said, "In other similar rooms we have identical tables
intended for countries we have been colonizing as well as for those we are planning to
colonize." When I asked the secretary where they found such diligent and talented men,
he replied, "Our agents all over the world are providing us intelligence continuously. As
you see, these representatives are experts in their work. Naturally, if you were furnished
with all the information possessed by a particular person, you would be able to think like
him and to make the decisions he would make. For you would be his substitute now."
The secretary went on, "So this was the first secret I was ordered by the Ministry to give
you.

"I shall tell you the second secret a month later, when you return the book of one
thousand pages."
I read the book part by part from the beginning to the end, focusing all my attention on it.
It increased my information about the Muhammadans. Now I knew how they thought,
what their weaknesses were, what made them powerful, and how to transform their
powerful qualities into vulnerable spots.
Muslims' weak spots as recorded in the book were as follows:
1- The Sunnite-Shiite controversy; the sovereign-people controversy; the Turkish-Iranian
controversy; the tribal controversy; and the scholars-states controversy.
2- With very few exceptions, Muslims are ignorant and illiterate.
3- Lack of spirituality, knowledge, and conscience. 4- They have completely ceased from
worldly business and are absorbed in matters pertaining to the Hereafter.
5- The emperors are cruel dictators.
6- The roads are unsafe, transportation and travels are sporadic.
7- No precaution is taken against epidemics such as plague and cholera, which kill tens of
thousands of people each year; hygiene is altogether ignored.
8- The cities are in ruins, and there is no system of supplying water.
9- The administration is unable to cope with rebels and insurgents, there is a general
disorderliness, rules of the Qur'aan, of which they are so proud, are almost never put into
practice.
10- Economical collapse, poverty, and retrogression.
11- There is not an orderly army, nor adequate weaponry; and the weapons in stock are
classical and friable. [Are they unaware of the systematic army established by Orhan
Ghaazee, who ascended to the (Ottoman) throne in 726 (C.E. 1326), Yildirim (The
Thunderbolt) Baayezeed Khan's immaculate army, which routed the great army of
crusaders in Nighbolu in 799 (C.E. 1399)?]
12- Violation of women's right.
13- Lack of environmental health and cleanliness(42).
After citing what was considered as Muslims' vulnerable spots in the paragraphs
paraphrased above, the book advised to cause Muslims to remain oblivious of the
material and spiritual superiority of their faith, Islam. Then, it gave the following
information about Islam:
1- Islam commands unity and cooperation and prohibits disunion. It is stated in the
Qur'aan, "Hold fast to Allah's rope altogether."
2- Islam commands being educated and being conscious. It is stated in the Qur'aan,
"Travel on the earth."
3- Islam commands to acquire knowledge. It is stated in a hadeeth, "Learning knowledge
is fard for every Muslim, male and female alike." 4- Islam commands to work for the
world. It is stated in the Qur'aan, "Some of them: O our Allah! Allot to us whatever is
beautiful both in the world and in the Hereafter."
5- Islam commands consultation. It is stated in the Qur'aan, "Their deeds are (done) upon
consultation among themselves."
6- Islam commands to build roads. It is stated in the Qur'aan, "Walk on the earth."
7- Islam commands Muslims to maintain their health. It is stated in a hadeeth,
"Knowledge is (made up) of four (parts): 1) The knowledge of Fiqh for the maintenance
of faith; 2) The knowledge of Medicine for the maintenance of health; 3) The knowledge
of Sarf and Nahw (Arabic grammar) for the maintenance of language; 4) The knowledge
of Astronomy so as to be aware of the times."

8- Islam commands development. It is stated in the Qur'aan, "Allah created everything on


the earth for you."
9- Islam commands orderliness. It is stated in the Qur'aan, "Everything is based on
calculations, orders."
10- Islam commands to be strong economically. It is stated in a hadeeth. "Work for your
world as though you would never die. And work for your hereafter as if you were going
to die tomorrow."
11- Islam commands to establish an army equipped with powerful weapons. It is stated in
the Qur'aan, "Prepare as many forces as you can against them."
12- Islam commands to observe women's rights and to value them. It is stated in the
Qur'aan, "As men legally have (rights) over women, so women have rights over them."
13- Islam commands cleanliness. It is stated in a hadeeth, "Cleanliness is from eemaan."
The book recommended to degenerate and to impair the following power sources:
Islam has negated racial, lingual, traditional, conventional, and national bigotry.
2- Interest, profiteering, fornication, alcoholic spirits, and pork are forbidden.
3- Muslims are firmly adherent to their 'Ulamaa (religious scholars).
4- Most of the Sunnee Muslims accept the Khaleefa as the Prophet's representative. They
believe that it is fard to show him the same respect as must be shown to Allah and the
Prophet.
5- Jihaad is fard.
6- According to the Shee'ee Muslims, all non-Muslims and Sunnee Muslims are foul
people.
7- All Muslims believe that Islam is the only true religion. 8- Most Muslims believe that
it is fard to expel the Jews and Christians from the Arab peninsula.
9- They perform their worships, (such as namaaz, fast, hajj...), in the most beautiful way.
10- The Shi'ee Muslims believe that it is haraam (forbidden) to build churches in Muslim
countries.
11- Muslims hold fast to the principles of the Islamic belief.
12- The Shi'ee Muslims consider it fard to give one-fifth of the Humus, i.e. booties taken
in Holy War, to the 'Ulamaa.
13- Muslims raise their children with such education that they are not likely to abandon
the way followed by their ancestors.
14- Muslim women cover themselves so well that mischief can by no means act on them.
15- Muslims make namaaz in jamaa'at, which brings them together five times daily.
16- Because the Prophet's grave and those of Alee and other pious Muslims are sacred
according to them, they assemble at these places.
17- There are a number of people descending from the Prophet, [who are called Sayyeds
and Shereefs]; these people who remind of the Prophet and who keep Him always remain
alive in the eyes of Muslims.
18- When Muslims assemble, preachers consolidate their eemaan and motivate them to
do pious acts.
19- It is fard to perform Amr-i-bi-l-ma'roof [Advising piety] and nahy-i-ani-l-munkar
[admonishing against wrongdoing].
20- It is sunnat to marry more than one women in order to contribute to the increase of
Muslim population.
21- Converting one person to Islam is more valuable to a Muslim than possessing the
whole world. 22- The hadeeth, "If a person opens an auspicious way, he will attain the

thawaabs of people who follow that way as well as the thawaab for having attained it," is
well known among Muslims.
23- Muslims hold the Qur'aan and hadeeths in very profound reverence. They believe that
obeying these sources is the only way of attaining Paradise.
The book recommends to vitiate Muslims' staunch spots and to popularize their
weaknesses, and it prescribed the methods for accomplishing this.
It advised the following steps for popularizing their vulnerable spots:
Establish controversies by inducing animosity among disputing groups, inoculating
mistrust, and by publishing literature to further incite controversies.
2- Obstruct schooling and publications, and burn literature whenever possible. Make sure
that Muslim children remain ignorant by casting various aspersions on religious
authorities and thus preventing Muslim parents from sending their children to religious
schools. [This British method has been very harmful to Islam].
3-4- Praise Paradise in their presence and convince them that they need not work for a
worldly life. Enlarge the circles of Tasawwuf. Keep them in an unconscious state by
encouraging them to read books advising Zuhd, such as Ihyaa-ul-'uloom-id-deen, by
Ghazaalee, Mesnevee, by Mawlaanaa, and various books written by Muhyiddeen Arabee.
5- Wheedle the emperors into cruelty and dictatorship by the following demagogic
falsifications: You are Allah's shadows on the earth. In fact, Aboo Bakr, 'Umar, 'Uthmaan,
'Alee, Umayyads and Abbasids came to seize power by sheer force and the sword, and
each of them was a sovereign. For example, Aboo Bakr assumed power with the help of
'Umar's sword and by setting fire to the houses of those who would not obey him, such as
Faatima's house. And 'Umar became Khaleefa upon Aboo Bakr's commendation.
'Uthmaan, on the other hand, became the president with 'Umar's order. As for 'Alee; he
became head of the State by an election held among bandits. Muaawiya assumed power
by the sword. Then, in the time of the Umayyads, sovereignty was turned into an
inheritance transferred through paternal chain. So was the case with the Abbasids. These
are the evidences for the fact that in Islam sovereignty is a form of dictatorship.
6- Delete death penalty for homicide from the penal code. [Death punishment is the only
deterrent to homicide and banditry. Anarchy and banditry cannot be prevented without
death penalty]. Hinder the administration in punishing highwaymen and robbers. Make
sure that traveling is unsafe by supporting and arming them.
7- We can make them lead an unhealthy life with the following scheme: Everything is
dependent on Allah's foreordination. Medical treatment will have no role in restoring
health. Does not Allah say in the Qur'aan, "My Rab (Allah) makes me eat and drink. He
cures me when I am ill. He alone will kill me and then resurrect me." Then, no one will
recover from an illness or escape death outside Allah's will.
8- Make the following statements for encouraging cruelty: Islam is a religion of worship.
It has no interest in State matters. Therefore, Muhammad and his Khaleefas did not have
any ministers or laws.
9- Economic decline is a natural consequence of the injurious activities advised so far.
We can add to the atrophy by rotting the crops, sinking the trade ships, setting fire to the
market places, destroying dams and barrages and thus leaving agricultural areas and
industrial centers under water, and finally by contaminating their networks of drinking
water.
10- Accustom statesmen to such indulgences as [sex, sports,] alcohol, gambling,
corruption which cause sedition and intriguing, and spending the State property for their
personal advantages. Encourage the civil servants to do things of this sort and reward

those who serve us in this way. Then the book added the following advice: The British
spies assigned this duty must be protected secretly or openly, and no expense must be
spared to rescue the ones arrested by Muslims.
11- Popularize all sorts of interest. For interest not only ruins national economy, but also
accustoms Muslims to disobeying the Koranic rules. Once a person has violated one
article of law, it will be easy for him to violate the other articles, too. They must be told
that "interest is haraam when in multiples, for it is stated in the Qur'aan, 'Do not receive
interest in multiples.'Therefore, not every form of interest is haraam." [The pay-off time
of a loan must not be appointed in advance. Any extra payment agreed on (at the time of
lending) is interest. This type of interest is a grave sin, be the extra payment stipulated
worth only a dirham. If it is stipulated that the same amount (borrowed) must be repaid
after a certain time, this is interest according to the Hanafee madh-hab. In sales on credit,
time of repayment must be appointed; yet if the debtor cannot pay off at the appointed
time and the time is protracted and an extra payment is stipulated, this kind of interest is
called Mudaa'af. The aayat-i-kareema quoted above states this type of interest in trade].
12- Spread false charges of atrocity against scholars, cast sordid aspersions against them
and thus alienate Muslims from them. We shall disguise some of our spies as them. Then
we shall have them commit squalid deeds. Thus they will be confused with scholars and
every scholar will be looked upon with suspicion. It is a must to infiltrate these spies into
Al-Az-har, Istanbul, Najaf, and Kerbelaa. We shall open schools, colleges for estranging
Muslims from scholars. In these schools we shall educate Byzantine, Greek and
Armenian children and bring them up as the enemies of Muslims. As for Muslim
children; we shall imbue them with the conviction that their ancestors were ignorant
people. In order to make these children hostile towards Khaleefas, scholars, and
statesmen, we shall tell them about their errors and convince them that they were busy
with their sensuous pleasures, that Khaleefas spent their time having fun with concubines,
that they misused the people's property, that they did not obey the Prophet in anything
they did.
13- In order to spread the calumniation that Islam abhors womankind, we shall quote the
aayat, "Men are dominant over women," and the hadeeth, "The woman is an evil
altogether."
14- Dirtiness is the result of lack of water. Therefore, we must deter the increasing of the
water supplies under various schemes.
The book advised the following steps for destroying Muslims' strongholds:
1- Induce such chauvinistic devotions as racism and nationalism among Muslims so as to
retract their attention towards their pre-Islamic heroisms. Rejuvenate the Pharaoh period
in Egypt, the Magi period in Iran, the Babylonian period in Iraq, the Attila and Dzengiz
era[tyrannisms] in the Ottomans. [They contained a long list on this subject].
2- The following vices must be done secretly or publicly: Alcoholic spirits, gambling,
fornication, pork, [and fights among sports clubs.] In doing this, Christians, Jews,
Magians, and other non-Muslims living in Muslim countries should be utilized to a
maximum, and those who work for this purpose should be awarded high salaries by the
treasury department of the Ministry of the Commonwealth.
3- Sow suspicion among them concerning Jihaad; convince them that Jihaad was a
temporary commandment and that it has been outdated.
4- Dispel the notion that "disbelievers are foul" from the hearts of Shiites. Quote the
Koranic verse, "As the food of those given a (heavenly) Book is halaal for you, so is your
food halaal for them," and tell them that the Prophet had a Jewish wife named Safiyya

and a Christian wife named Maariya and that the Prophet's wives were not foul at all. 5Imbue Muslims with the belief that "what the Prophet meant by Islam' was 'a perfect
religion' and therefore this religion could be Judaism or Christianity as well as Islam."
Substantiate this with the following reasoning: The Qur'aan gives the name 'Muslim' to
members of all religions. For instance, it quotes the Prophet Joseph (Yoosuf 'alaihissalaam') as having invoked, "Kill me as a Muslim," and the Prophets Ibraaheem and
Ismaa'eel as having prayed, "O our Rab (Allah)! Make us Muslims for Yourself and make
a Muslim people for Yourself from among our offspring,"and the Prophet Ya'qoob as
having said to his sons, "Die only and only as Muslims."
6- Repeat frequently that it is not haraam to build churches, that the Prophet and his
Khaleefas did not demolish them, that on the contrary they respected them, that the
Qur'aan states, "If Allah had not dispelled some people by means of others, monasteries,
churches, synagogues, and mosques wherein Allah's name is mentioned very much would
have been annihilated (by now)," that Islam respects temples, that it does not demolish
them, and that it prevents those who would otherwise demolish them.
7- Confuse Muslims about the hadeeths, "Deport the Jews from the Arabic Peninsula,"
and, "Two religions cannot coexist on the Arabic peninsula." Say that "If these two
hadeeths were true, the Prophet would not have had a Jew wife and a Christian one. Nor
would he have made an agreement with the Najran Christians."
8- Try to hamper Muslims in their worships and make them falter about the usefulness of
worships by saying that "Allah does not need men's worships." Prevent them from their
worship of Hajj as well as from any sort of worship that will bring them together.
Likewise, try to obstruct construction of mosques, mausoleums and madrasas and the
restoration of Ka'ba.
9- Mystify the Shiites about the rule that one-fifth of the ghaneema property taken from
the enemy in combat is to be given to the 'Ulamaa and explain that this one-fifth belongs
to the ghaneema property taken from (Daar-ul-harb) and that it has nothing to do with
commercial earnings. Then add that "Humus (the one-fifth mentioned above) is to be
given to the Prophet or to the Khaleefa, not to the 'Ulamaa. For the 'Ulamaa are given
houses, palaces, animals, and orchards. Therefore, it is not permissible to give them the
(Humus)." 10- Insert heresies into Muslims' creedal tenets and then criticize Islam for
being a religion of terror. Assert that Muslim countries are retrogressive and that they
have undergone shocks, thus impairing their adherence to Islam. [On the other hand,
Muslims established the greatest and the most civilized empire of the world. They
declined as their adherence to Islam deteriorated].
11- Very important! Alienate children from their fathers, thus depriving them of their
elders' education. We shall educate them. Consequently, the moment children have parted
from their fathers' education, there will no longer be any possibility for them to maintain
contact with their belief, faith, or religious scholars.
12- Provoke the womenfolk to get rid of their traditional covers. Fabricate such
falsifications as "Covering is not a genuine Islamic commandment. It is a tradition
established in the time of the Abbasids. Formerly, other people would see the Prophet's
wives and women would join all sorts of social activities." After stripping the woman of
her traditional cover, tempt the youth towards her and cause indecencies between them!
This is a very effective method for annihilating Islam. First use non-Muslim women for
this purpose. In the course of time the Muslim woman will automatically degenerate and
will begin to follow their example.

13- Exploit every opportunity to put an end to performing namaaz in jamaa'at by casting
aspersions on the imaams in mosques, by revealing their mistakes, and by sowing discord
and adversity between them and the jamaa'ats (groups of Muslims) who perform their
daily prayers of namaaz behind them.
14- Say that all mausoleums must be demolished to the ground, that they did not exist in
the Prophet's time. In addition, deter Muslims from visiting the graves of Prophets,
Khaleefas and pious Muslims by arising doubts about visiting graves. For instance say,
"The Prophet was buried by his mother and Aboo Bekr and 'Umar were buried in the
cemetery called Baakee'.'Uthmaan's grave is unknown. Huseyn's head was buried at (a
place called) Hannana. It is not known where his body was buried. The graves in
Kaazimiyya belong to two caliphs. They do not belong to Kaazim and Jawaad, two
descendants of the Prophet. As to the one in Tus (city); that grave belongs to Haarun, not
to Ridaa, a member of the Ahl-i-Bayt (the Prophet's Family). The graves in Samerra
belong to the Abbasids. They do not belong to Haadee, Askeree, and Mahdee, members
of the Ahl-i-Bayt. As it is fard to demolish all the mausoleums and domes in Muslim
countries, so is it a must to bulldoze the cemetery called Baakee'."
15- Make people feel skeptical about the fact that Sayyeds are the Prophet's descendants.
Mix Sayyeds with other people by making non-Sayyeds wear black and green turbans.
Thus people will be perplexed in this matter and will consequently begin to distrust
Sayyeds. Strip religious authorities and Sayyeds of their turbans so that the Prophetic
pedigree will be lost and religious authorities will not be respected any more. 16- Say that
it is fard to demolish the places where Shiites mourn, that this practice is a heresy and
aberration. People should be prevented from visiting those places, the number of
preachers should be decreased and taxes should be levied on preachers and owners of the
places for mourning.
17- Under the pretext of love of freedom, convince all Muslims that "Everyone is free to
do whatever he likes. It is not fard to perform Amr-i-bi-l-ma'roof and Nahy-i-anil-munkar
or to teach the Islamic principles." [On the contrary, it is fard to learn and teach Islam. It
is a Muslim's first duty]. In addition, imbue them with this conviction: "Christians are to
remain in their own faith (Christianity) and Jews are to abide by theirs (Judaism). No one
will enter another person's heart. Amr-i-ma'roof and Nahy-i-anil-munkar are the
Khaleefa's duties."
18- In order to impede Muslims from increasing in number, births must be limited and
polygamy must be prohibited. Marriage must be subjected to restrictions. For instance, it
must be said that an Arab cannot marry an Iranian, an Iranian cannot marry an Arab, a
Turk cannot marry an Arab.
19- Make sure to stop Islamic propagations and conversions to Islam. Broadcast the
conception that Islam is a religion peculiar to the Arabs only. As an evidence for this, put
forward the Qur'aanic verse which reads, "This is a Dhikr for thee and thine people."
20- Pious institutions must be restricted and confined to the State monopoly, to the extent
that individuals must be unable to establish madrasas or other similar pious institutions.
21- Arouse doubts as to the authenticity of the Qur'aan in Muslims' minds; publish
Koranic translations containing excisions, additions, and interpolations, and then say,
"The Qur'aan has been defiled. Its copies are incongruous. A verse one of them contains
does not exist in another." Excise the verses insulting Jews, Christians and all other nonMuslims and those commanding Jihaad, Amr-i-bi-l-ma'roof and Nahy-i-anil
munkar.Translate the Qur'aan into other languages such as Turkish, Persian, Indian, thus
to prevent Arabic from being learned and read outside Arabic countries, and again,

prevent the (Ad-haan), (Namaaz), and (Duaa) from being done in Arabic outside Arabic
countries.
Likewise, Muslims will be made to feel doubts about hadeeths. The translations,
criticisms and interpolations planned for the Qur'aan should be applied to hadeeths as
well.
When I read through the book, which was entitled How Can We Demolish Islam, I found
it really excellent. It was a peerless guide for the studies I was going to carry on. When I
returned the book to the secretary and told him that it afforded me great pleasure to read
it, he said, "You can be sure that you are not alone in this field. We have lots of men
doing the same job as you have been carrying on. Our Ministry has assigned over five
thousand men to this mission. The Ministry is considering increasing this number to one
hundred thousand. When we reach this number we shall have brought all Muslims under
our sway and obtained all Muslim countries."
Sometime later the secretary said: "Good news to you! Our Ministry needs one century at
the most to realize this program. We may not live to see those happy days, but our
children will. What a beautiful saying this is: I have eaten what others sowed. So I am
sowing for others.' When the British manage this they will have pleased the whole
Christian world and will have rescued them from a twelve-century-old nuisance."
The secretary went on as follows: "The crusading expeditions which continued for
centuries were of no use. Nor can the Mongols [armies of Dzengiz] be said to have done
anything to extirpate Islam. For their work was sudden, unsystematic, and ungrounded.
They carried on military expeditions so as to reveal their enmity. Consequently, they
became tired in a short time. But now our valuable administrators are trying to demolish
Islam by means of a very subtle plan and a long-range patience. We must use military
force, too. Yet this should be the final phase, that is, after we have completely consumed
Islam, after we have hammered it from all directions and rendered it into a miserable state
from which it will never recover again and fight against us." The secretary's final words
were these: "Our superiors in Istanbul must have been very wise and intelligent. They
executed our plan precisely. What did they do? They mixed with the Muhammadans and
opened madrasas for their children. They built churches. They were perfectly successful
in popularizing alcoholic spirits, gambling, indecencies, and breaking them into groups
by means of instigation [and football clubs.] They aroused doubts in the minds of young
Muslims. They inserted controversies and oppositions into their governments. They
spread mischief everywhere. They depraved administrators, directors, and statesmen by
filling their houses with Christian women. With activities of this sort they broke their
forces, shocked their adherence to their faith, corrupted them morally, and disrupted their
unity and communication. Now the time has come to commence a sudden war and
extirpate Islam."
PART SEVEN
Having enjoyed the first secret, I was looking forward to knowing the second secret.
Eventually one day the secretary explained the second secret he had promised. The
second secret was a fifty page scheme prepared for the high ranking officials working in
the Ministry for annihilating Islam altogether within a century's time. The scheme was
comprised of fourteen articles. The scheme was closely guarded for fear that it might be
obtained by Muslims. The following are the articles of the scheme:

We have to form a well-established alliance and an agreement of mutual help with the
Russian Tsar in order to invade Bukhaara, Taajikistaan, Armenia, Khorasan and its
neighborhood. Again, a sound agreement must be established with Russians in order to
invade their neighbor, Turkey.
2- We must establish cooperation with France in demolishing the Islamic world both from
within and from without.
3- We must sow very ardent rows and controversies between the Turkish and Iranian
governments and emphasize nationalistic and racist feelings in both parties. In addition,
all the Muslim tribes, nations and countries neighboring one another must be set against
one another. All the religious sects, including the extinct ones, must be recovered and set
against one another.
4- Parts from Muslim countries must be handed over to non-Muslim communities. For
example, Medina must be given to the Jews, Alexandria to the Christians, Imaara to the
Saaiba, Kermanshah to the Nusayriya group, who have divinized 'Alee, Mousul to the
Yazeedees, the Iranian gulf to Hindus, Tripoli to the Druzis, Kars to the Alawees, and
Masqat to the Khaarijee group. The next step should be to arm these groups so that each
of them will be a thorn on the body of Islam. Their areas must be widened till Islam has
collapsed and perished.
5- A schedule must be concocted to divide the Muslim and Ottoman States into, as small
as possible, local states that are always at loggerheads with one another. An example of
this is today's India. For the following theory is common: "Break, and you will
dominate," and "Break, and you will destroy."
6- It is necessary to adulterate Islam's essence by adding interpolated religions and sects
into it, and this we must devise in such a subtle manner that the religions we are to invent
should be compatible with the sensuous tastes and aspirations of the people among whom
we are going to spread them. We shall invent four different religions in the Shiite
countries:
A religion that divinizes hadrat Huseyn;
2- A religion that divinizes Ja'fer Saadiq;
3- A religion divinizing Mahdi;
4- A religion divinizing Alee Ridaa. The first one is suitable for Kerbelaa, the second one
for Isfahaan, the third one for Samarra, and the fourth one for Khoraasaan. In the
meantime, we must degenerate the existing four Sunnite madh-habs into four selfstanding religions. After doing this, we shall establish an altogether new Islamic sect in
Najd, and then instigate bloody rows among all these groups. We shall annihilate the
books belonging to the four madh-habs, so that each of these groups will consider
themselves to be the only Muslim group and will look on the other groups as heretics that
are to be killed.
Seeds of mischief and malice, such as fornication, pederasty, alcoholic spirits and
gambling, will be scattered among Muslims. Non-Muslims living in the countries
concerned will be used for this purpose. A tremendous army of people of this sort is on
requisition for the realization of this goal. 8- We should spare no effort to train and
educate vicious leaders and cruel commanders in Muslim countries, to bring them into
power and thus to pass laws prohibiting obedience to the Sharee'at (religious injunctions).
We should put them to use, to the extent that they should be subservient enough to do
whatever the Ministry (of the Commonwealth) asks them to do, and vice versa. Through
them we should be able to impose our wishes on Muslims and Muslim countries by using
laws as an enforcement. We should establish a social way of life, an atmosphere wherein

obeying the Shari'at will be looked on as a guilt and worshipping as an act of regression.
We should trick Muslims into electing their leaders from among non-Muslims. For doing
this, we should disguise some of our agents as Islamic authorities and bring them into
high positions so that they may execute our wishes.
9- Do your best to prevent the learning of Arabic. Popularize languages other than Arabic,
such as Persian, Kurdish, and Pushtu (Pashto). Resuscitate foreign languages in the
Arabic countries and popularize the local dialects in order to annihilate literary, eloquent
Arabic, which is the language of the Qur'aan and the Sunna.
10- Placing our men around statesmen, we should gradually make them secretaries of
these statesmen and through them we should carry out the desires of the Ministry. The
easiest way of doing this is the slave trade: First of all we must adequately train the spies
we are to send forth in the guise of slaves and concubines. Then we must sell them to the
close relatives of Muslim statesmen, for instance, to their children or wives, or to other
people liked or respected by them. These slaves, after we have sold them, will gradually
approach the statesmen. Becoming their mothers and governesses, they will encircle
Muslim statesmen like a bracelet girding a wrist.
11- Missionary areas must be widened so as to penetrate into all social classes and
vocations, especially into such professions as medicine, engineering, and book-keeping.
We must open centers of propaganda and publication under such names as churches,
schools, hospitals, libraries and charity institutions in the Islamic countries and spread
them far and near. We must distribute millions of Christian book free of charge. We must
publish the Christian history and intergovernmental law alongside the Islamic history. We
must disguise our spies as monks and nuns and place them in churches and monasteries.
We must use them as leaders of Christian movements. These people will at the same time
detect all the movements and trends in the Islamic world and report to us instantaneously.
We must institute an army of Christians who will, under such names as 'professor',
'scientist', and 'researcher', distort and defile the Islamic history, learn all the facts about
Muslims' ways, behavior, and religious principles, and then destroy all their books and
eradicate the Islamic teachings.
12- We must confuse the minds of the Islamic youth, boys and girls alike, and arouse
doubts and hesitations in their minds as to Islam. We must completely strip them of their
moral values by means of schools, books, magazines [sports clubs, publications, motion
pictures, television], and our own agents trained for this job. It is a prerequisite to open
clandestine societies to educate and train Jewish, Christian and other non-Muslim
youngsters and use them as decoys to trap the Muslim youngsters.
13- Civil wars and insurrections must be provoked; Muslims must always be struggling
with one another as well as against non-Muslims so that their energies will be wasted and
improvement and unity will be impossible for them. Their mental dynamisms and
financial sources must be annihilated. Young and active ones must be done away with.
Their orders must be rendered into terror and anarchy.
14- Their economy must be razed in all areas, their sources of income and agricultural
areas must be spoilt, their irrigation channels and lines must be devastated and rivers
dried up, the people must be made to hate the performance of namaaz and working, and
sloth must be made as widespread as possible. Playgrounds must be opened for lazy
people. Narcotics and alcoholic spirits must be made common.
[The articles we have cited above were explained very clearly with such aids as maps,
pictures and charts]. I thanked the secretary for giving me a copy of this magnificent
document.

After a month's stay in London, I received a message from the Ministry ordering me to go
to Iraq to see Muhammad of Najd again. As I was leaving for my mission, the secretary
said to me, "Never be negligent about Muhammad of Najd! As it is understood from the
reports sent by our spies up until now, Muhammad of Najd is a typical fool very
convenient for the realization of our purposes.
"Talk frankly with Muhammad of Najd. Our agents talked with him frankly in Isfahaan,
and he accepted our wishes on terms. The terms he stipulated are: He would be supported
with adequate property and weaponry to protect himself against states and scholars who
would certainly attack him upon his announcing his ideas and views. A principality would
be established in his country, be it a small one. The Ministry accepted these terms."
I felt as if I were going to fly from joy when I heard this news. I asked the secretary what
I was supposed to do about this. His reply was, "The Ministry has devised a subtle
scheme for Muhammad of Najd to carry out, as follows:
"1- He is to declare all Muslims as disbelievers and announce that it is halaal to kill them,
to seize their property, to violate their chastity, to make their men slaves and their women
concubines and to sell them at slave markets.
"2- He is to state that Ka'ba is an idol and therefore it must be demolished. In order to do
away with the worship of hajj, he is to provoke tribes to raid groups of hadjis (Muslim
pilgrims), to plunder their belongings and to kill them.
"3- He is to strive to dissuade Muslims from obeying the Khaleefa. He is to provoke them
to revolt against him. He is to prepare armies for this purpose. He is to exploit every
opportunity to spread the conviction that it is necessary to fight against the notables of
Hedjaz and bring disgrace on them.
"4- He is to allege that the mausoleums, domes and sacred places in Muslim countries are
idols and polytheistic milieus and must therefore be demolished. He is to do his best to
produce occasions for insulting Prophet Muhammad, his Khaleefas, and all prominent
scholars of madh-habs.
"5- He is to do his utmost to encourage insurrections, oppressions and anarchy in Muslim
countries.
"6- He is to try to publish a copy of the Qur'aan interpolated with additions and excisions,
as is the case with hadeeths."
After explaining this six-paragraph scheme, the secretary added, "Do not panic at this
huge programma. For our duty is to sow the seeds for annihilating Islam. There will come
generations to complete this job. The British government has formed it a habit to be
patient and to advance step by step. Wasn't Prophet Muhammad, the performer of the
great and bewildering Islamic revolution, a human being after all? And this Muhammad
of Najd of ours has promised to accomplish this revolution of ours like his Prophet."
A couple of days later, I took permission from the Minister and the Secretary, bid farewell
to my family and friends, and set out for Basra. As I left home my little son said, "Come
back soon daddy!" My eyes became wet. I could not conceal my sorrow from my wife.
After a tiresome journey I arrived in Basra at night. I went to Abd-ur-Ridaa's home. He
was asleep. He was very pleased when he woke up and saw me. He offered me warm
hospitality. I spent the night there. The next morning he said to me, "Muhammad of Najd
called on me, left this letter for you, and left." I opened the letter. He wrote the was
leaving for his country, Najd, and gave his address there. I at once set out to go there, too.
After an extremely onerous journey I arrived there. I found Muhammad of Najd in his
home. He had lost a lot of weight. I did not say anything this concerning this to him.
Afterwards, I learned that he had gotten married.

We decided between us that he was to tell other people that I was his slave and was back
from some place he had sent me. He introduced me as such.
I stayed with Muhammad of Najd for two years. We made a programma to announce his
call. Eventually I fomented his resolution in 1143 Hijri [A.D. 1730]. Hence by collecting
supporters around himself, he insinuated his call by making covert statements to those
who were very close to him. Then, day by day, he expanded his call. I put guards around
him in order to protect him against his enemies. I gave them as much property and money
as they wanted. Whenever the enemies of Muhammad of Najd wanted to attack him, I
inspirited and heartened them. As his call spread wider, the number of his adversaries
increased. From time to time he attempted to give up his call, especially when he was
overwhelmed by the multitude of the attacks made on him. Yet I never left him alone and
always encouraged him. I would say to him, "O Muhammad, the Prophet suffered more
persecution than you have so far. You know, this is a way of honor. Like any other
revolutionist, you would have to endure some difficulty!"
Enemy attack was likely any moment. I therefore hired spies on his adversaries.
Whenever his enemies meant harm to him, the spies would report to me and so I would
neutralize their harm. Once I was informed that the enemies were to kill him. I
immediately took the precautions to thwart their preparations. When the people (around
Muhammad of Najd) heard about this plot of their enemies, they began to hate them all
the more. They fell into the trap they had laid.
Muhammad of Najd promised me that he would implement all the six articles of the
scheme and added, "For the time being I can execute them only partly." He was right in
this word of his. At that time it was impossible for him to carry out all of them.
He found it impossible to have Ka'ba demolished. And he gave up the idea of announcing
that it (Ka'ba) is an idol. In addition, he refused to publish an interpolated copy of the
Qur'aan. Most of his fears in this respect were from the Shereefs in Mekka and the
Istanbul government. He told me that "If we made these two announcements we would be
attacked by a powerful army." I accepted his excuse, for he was right. The conditions
were not favorable at all.
A couple of years later the Ministry of Commonwealth managed to cajole Muhammad
bin Su'ood, the Ameer of Der'iyya, into joining our lines. They sent me a messenger to
inform me about this and to establish a mutual affection and cooperation between the two
Muhammads. For earning Muslims' hearts and trusts, we exploited our Muhammad of
Najd religiously, and Muhammad bin Su'ood politically. It is an historical fact that states
based on religion have lived longer and have been more powerful and more imposing.
Thus we continuously became more and more powerful. We made Der'iyya city our
capital. And we named our new religion the WAHHABI religion. The Ministry supported
and reinforced the Wahhabi government in an underhanded way. The new government
bought eleven British officers, very well learned in the Arabic language and desert
warfare, under the name of slaves. We prepared our plans in cooperation with these
officers. Both Muhammads followed the way we showed them. When we did not receive
any orders from the Ministry we made our own decisions.
We all married girls from tribes. We enjoyed the pleasure of a Muslim wife's devotion to
her husband. Thus we had stronger relations with tribes. Everything goes well now. Our
centralization is becoming more and more vigorous each day. Unless an unexpected
catastrophe takes place, we shall eat the fruit we have prepared. For we have done
whatever is necessary and sown the seeds.

Raqs
Spiritual Dancing (Raqs) and Singing (Sama/Qawwali)
Allah Y says in the Holy Quraan, the 3rd Sura, al-i-Imraan, verse 191:

Men who celebrate the praises of Allah Y, standing, sitting, and lying down on their sides,
Hajaita Muhammadan fa-ajabtu 'anhu
Wa 'indAllah-i fee zaaka'l jazaau
You mocked Muhammad e, but I replied on his behalf,
And there is reward with Allah Y for this
Hajaita Muhammad-an barran taqiyyan
RasulAllah-i sheematuhu'l wafaau
You satirized Muhammad e, virtuous, righteous,
The Apostle of Allah e , whose nature is truthfulness,
Fa-inna abee wa waalidahu wa 'irdee
Li 'irdi Muhammad-in minkum wiqaau
So verily, my father and his father and my honour
Are a protection to the honour of Muhammad e
Some non-Muslim poets used to mock the Holy Prophet Muhammad e through their
poetry and Hazrath Hassan bin Thabit t is answering38[1] them through poetry in defense
of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. This is narrated by The Mother of the Believers,
Hazrath Aisha Siddiqa y. This Hadith is in both Bukhari and Muslim reported by Hazrath
Urwa39[2], the nephew of Hazrath Aisha Siddiqa y. Hazrath Aisha y said, Forgive Hassan
for his transgression for he recites the praises of my beloved. This is also reported in
38[1] The whole of Chapter 1026 in Sahih al-Muslim is about "The
Merits of Hassaan bin Thabit t And in the above cited (part of a longer)
Hadith from that chapter (Vol. 4, Book 29, p. 1328), we get a glimpse
of how Hazrath Hassaan bin Thabit y actually replied. In hadith no
6081 Hazrath Aisha y said: I heard Allah's Messenger e as saying to
Hassaan: "Verily Ruh ul Quds would continue to help you as long as
you put up a defense on behalf of Allah Y and His Messenger e". And
she said: I heard Allah's Messenger e as saying: "Hassaan satirized
against them and gave satisfaction to the Muslims and disquieted the
non-Muslims".

39[2] Narrated Aisha: Once Hassaan bin Thabit t asked the permission of the Holy Prophet e to satirize
(i.e. compose satirical poetry defaming) the infidels. The Holy Prophet e said, What about the fact that I
have common descent with them? Hassan replied, I shall take you out of them as a hair is taken out of
dough. Narrated Urwa: I started abusing Hassan in front of Aisha, whereupon she said. Dont abuse
him, for he used to defend the Prophet (with his poetry). (Book #56, Hadith #731) Bukhari

both Bukhari and Muslim. She was referring to Hazrath Hassan t being part of the group
that scandalized Hazrath Aisha y yet she forgave him and implored the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e to forgive him on account of his poetry praising the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e (naat). She loved his poetry so much, that she reports every hadith with
reference to Hazrath Hassan ts poetry.
It is reported in Mishkat a'l Masabih (Book 2, Chapter 12, p. 187), the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e used to ask Hazrath Hassaan bin Thabit t to answer his enemies on his
behalf. Indeed, he had a pulpit erected within the mosque for him to stand upon and recite
poetry belittling the unbelievers and praising the beloved Holy Prophet e Sayyidi wa
Murshidi al-Habib Ahmad Mash'hur bin Taha al-Haddad talks about this in his classical
masterpiece Miftah u'l Jannah (Key To The Garden) and sums it up as follows:
"This was done through poetry, and in the mosque, so see what rank a poet may reach
who rises to defend religion and make known the good qualities of the Master of the
Messengers - his degree is not less than that of a preacher who summons and guides, for
they both stand on the pulpit of summoning to Allah Y , defending religion and subduing
its enemies". (p. 120)
Hazrath Aisha y says, as reported in Bukhari Shareef and in Tirmidhi, Musnad Imam
Ahmad, Haakim and numerous collections of ahadith that the Holy Prophet Muhammad e
used to set up the minmbar in the Masjid and ask Hazrath Hassaan t to sit thereon and
recite naat.
In Bukhari, Musnad Imam Ahmad , Tabarani, Baihaqi it is reported that Hazrath AlAswad ibn Suray t said, "I came to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e and said, Messenger
of Allah e, I have praised Allah Y and you in poems of praise and eulogies. He said, As
far as your Lord is concerned, He must be praised40[3], and so I began to recite them. In
another version it states that the Holy Prophet Muhammad e summoned him to bring all
his compositions and to recite them. So the Holy Prophet Muhammad e has established
this Sunnah of listening to poetry in praise of Allah Y and in his honour for every lover.
Hazrath Anas t reports as it appears in Tirmidhi, Nasai and Sunan-e-Kubra; also
mentioned by Imam Asqalani, Qurtubi etc that upon the Conquest of Makkah when the
Holy Prophet Muhammad e was entered the Holy Sanctuary (Haram) in a procession, at
its head was the Holy Prophet e , seated on his camel Qaswa; Hazrath Abdullah bin
Rawaha t, on foot in front, held the bridle; around on every side were the chief
Companions; and behind, in a long extended line, came the rest of the pilgrims on camels
and on foot. Hazrath Abdullah bin Rawaha t41[4] led the procession reciting naat and also
the following couplet on entry:
40[3] This in no-way signifies the Holy Prophet Muhammad e forbade
his praise, but these are words of humility from the personification of
humility.
41[4] "And whoso obey Allah Y and the Messenger (Muhammad e) then they will be in the company of
those on whom Allah Y has bestowed His Grace,...." (4:69) Soon after the revelation of this ayah,
Rasulullah e commented, "I can vouch for a Sahabi who is amongst those blessed by Allah Y ." The
Sahabah t anxiously waited to hear the name of this auspicious individual. After a slight pause, Rasulullah
e uttered from his blessed lips the name, "Abdullah bin Rawaha t

"Get out of his way, you disbelievers, make way, we will fight you about its revelation
with strokes that will remove heads from shoulders and make friend unmindful of
friend."
From this we learn that to recite naat in a procession (juloos) is also a Sunnah. Hazrath
Umar t objected to his prolific use of poetry and said to him, "Why do you recite so many
poems in the House of Allah Y in the presence of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e?"
Before Hazrath Abdullah bin Rawaha t, could respond, the Holy Prophet Muhammad e
stated on his behalf, "Oh Umar! His poems are more effective (against the disbelievers)
than your arrows!" This was the jurist, Hazrath Umar t speaking but the very same lover,
Hazrath Umar t would during his caliphate, in a state of ecstasy, ask an old women of
Madinah to repeat poetry on the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. The might and power of
good oration is clearly illustrated by the statement of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e for
we notice that poetry in praise of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e increases love in hearts
of lovers whilst some dead hearts feel pain.
These are narrations that belong to the Chapter of Love in this Deen. If this deen is
devoid of this Chapter of Love, then it has no relevance in our lives. Imams Haakim,
Baihaqi and Tabarani report about Hazrath Ka'b ibn Zuhair t who previously used to
compose satirical verses of poetry against the Muslims but later repented on the Hands of
the Holy Prophet Muhammad e and accepted Islam. The incident is as follows, After the
conquest of Makkah, he arrived in Madinah and stayed at a mans house from Juhainah as
a guest. After the dawn prayer; when he was about to leave, the man suggested that he go
to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. He went to Masjid an-Nabawi in disguise and face
veiled, sat by the Holy Prophet Muhammad e, and put his hand in the blessed hand. The
Holy Prophet Muhammad e who had never seen Kab before, did not recognize him.
Kab t said: "O, Messenger of Allah e! If Kab bin Zuhair comes to you as a repentant
Muslim; will he be secure and forgiven if I fetch him?" The Messenger of Allah e said,
"Yes." "I am Kab bin Zuhair," said he. Upon hearing that one of the Helpers rose to his
feet and asked the Messengers allowance to cut his throat. "Leave him alone!" said the
Holy Prophet e, He has become a repentant Muslim after his disposal of the past. "He
repented on the blessed hands of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e and pledged allegiance.
He then said, O Messenger of Allah e! I have written a naat, may I recite it? The Holy
Prophet Muhammad e gave permission. Kab then recited his well-known poem, a 58 line
ode in Basit (expansive) meter which he had especially composed for the occasion. It is
know as Baanat Su'aad or Suaad has left42[5]. It is his longest qasida, all of which
rhyme in the letter "laam", hence it is a "laamiyyah". Four of these verses have become
so popular that they are quoted by many scholars in their books.
He sought pardon with the following verse:
Verse 39
Nubbitu anna Rasulallahi awadani
I was told that the Messenger of Allah e had threatened retaliation against me
Wa al-afwu inda rasulillai mamulu
But with the Messenger of Allah e have hope of finding pardon
42[5] The entire poem is recorded by Ibn Hisham in his Sira. Ibn
Hisham, Sirat Rasulullah, p.503-513 of the translation by A.Guillaume,
9th Printing ( Karachi . Oxford Univ. press, 1990)

The Holy Prophet Muhammad e honored him when he recited the following verse:
Verse 51
innar-rasoola lanurun yustadau bihi
Indeed the messenger is a light from whom light is sought
Muhannadun min suyufillahi maslulu43[6]
The unsheathed sword of Allah Y , of the fine Indian make
On hearing this verse the Holy Prophet Muhammad e was ushered into a state of ecstasy
(wajd). In this state, the Holy Prophet e removed his shawl and presented it to Hazrath
Kab t. The great Imams state, amongst them Imam Asqalani t, Imam Qastalani t, Imam
Ibn Kathir t that, this mantle or shawl was passed down in the family of Hazrath Ka'b ibn
Zuhair t and it was eventually acquired by Hazrath Amir Muawiyyah t and passed down
to the various caliphs. Imam Shihabuddin as-Suhrawardi (passed away 632 A.H/1235
C.E) in his spiritual classic 'Awaarif u'l Ma'aarif (The Illuminative Knowledge of the
Spiritual Masters, p. 158) informs that it became the most valuable piece of clothing ever
since. It had been used by the caliphs as a means of blessing during battles, being
carried in a casket. It is stated that the Muslims won every battle to which it was taken.
To this day it is preserved in a museum in Istanbul in a gold casket.
Books of Sirah have recorded up to 188+ poets of naat 44[7]both male and female from
amongst the Sahabah. The uncle of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e, Hazrath Abbas t
composed and recited naat in praise of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. Has history
recorded many uncles who sing the praises of their nephew? Hazrath Abu Taalib, the
uncle who cared for the Holy Prophet Muhammad e after the father of the Holy Prophet e
had passed away, also recited naat of the Holy Prophet e. His poetry has been preserved
and recorded in the hadith collection of Bukhari. Usually a person who has not accepted
the faith, his utterance regarding the Holy Prophet Muhammad e is not narrated in hadith
collections. Abu Taalib recited:
O Messenger of Allah e! the cloud looks at your beautiful face
Then only does it rain
Imam Bukhari recorded this in his hadith collection. Probably he said, For this I make
an exception.
In Tabarani and Haakim it is recorded that Hazrath Abbas bin Abd al-Mutallib t requested
permission to recite poetry of naat. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e granted permission
and the Holy Prophet e made the following dua after hearing it:
43[6] Initially Hazrath Kab t, had recited ( naar), but the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e changed it to ( nur) and in recitation the Holy
Prophet e amended to : refer Al-Malfuz al Sharif
Ala Hazrath English Trans: Barkatur Raza Publications, Durban, South
Africa pages 234, 235
44[7] The hadith master (hafiz) and historian Ibn Sayyid al-Nas (d. 732)
compiled a 400-page anthology of over 180 male and female
Companion-poets who recited na`at in praise of the Prophet. In his
book, entitled Minah al-madh (The Gifts of Praise), he lists each
Companion alphabetically, identifying them by name and tribe and
quoting a few representative lines of na`at from each.

O My uncle! Allah Y preserve your face and teeth due to your recitation
It is also reported that Hazrath Qays ibn Abd Allah ibn Amr t a.k.a al-Nabigha al-Jadi t
recited a naat of about 180 verses. The Holy Prophet e was pleased and made a similar
dua:
Allah Y preserve your face and teeth due to your recitation
or
May Allah Y not deform your mouth?
The Imams of Hadith report that Hazrath Qays ibn Abd Allah ibn Amr t reached the ripe
old age of 120 years, some say 112, and if any teeth of his fell off miraculously a new
teeth grew the same day 45[8]. It is stated that each new tooth was more shiny and white
than the previous one.
Love leads to obedience (itaat), imitation (itteba), and desire to see the object of love
(shawke liqa), reverence (tazeem) and respect (adab). Respect of the Holy Quraan is to
recite it. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e has stated, One who loves me must love the
Holy Quraan and the one that loves the Holy Quraan must cry and recite it. He e
expounded that if one cannot cry, one should force oneself to cry because we need to
respond to the Quraan in this way. Cry in such a way that the listener feels one is crying
out of the fear of Allah Y. The Sahaba would also be deeply moved with emotions when
they recited the Quraan. Hazrath Abu Bakr t, for example, who was a soft-hearted man,
used to cry while reciting the Holy Quraan when leading Muslims in prayer. Once,
Hazrath Umar t became ill and confined to bed as a result of his reciting the verses,7 and
8 of the 52nd Sura, at-Tur:

Verily, the Torment of your Lord will surely come to pass. There is none that can avert
it.
On another occasion, Hazrath Umar t wept when he was reciting the 86th verse of the
12th Sura,

Say:I (Prophet Jacob) only complain of my grief and sorrow to Allah Y .


Lovers of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e should love the Holy Quraan and Hadith.
These are signs of love of the Holy Prophet e. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e said and
Hazrath Ali t reports:
Man ahabbani wa ahabba haazain
He who loves me and loves these two [Hazrath Imam Hassan t and Imam Hussain t]
Wa aba huma wa umma huma
And loves their father Ali t and their mother Fatimah Zahra y
Kana maifi darajati yaumul kiyaama
45[8] Ibn Hajar, al-Isaba, No. 8639; Bayhaqi, 6:232; Ibn Kathir, alBidaya, 6:168.

On the Day of Judgment they will be with me on my level


This Hadith is in Tirmidhi. The love of those that the Holy Prophet e loved is a sign of
loving him.
Hazrath Ali t narrates that the Holy Prophet Muhammad e said46[9]:

I, Ali, Fatimah, Hassan and Hussain and all those that love us will be together at one
place on the Day of Judgment. We will eat and drink together until people will be
separated
The Holy Prophet Muhammad also e prayed to Allah Y to love those that he loves and to
love those that love them. This is the status of love within the Islamic framework. Sahaba
who were mortally wounded in battle, stood up on hearing the voice of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e. If this is not love, then what is? When the Holy Prophet Muhammad e
requested a contribution for the Tabuk47[10] Expedition, the Muslims gave whatever
they could give, but Hazrath Abu Bakr Siddique t exceeded all the records by giving all
that he had to the Holy Prophet e without leaving anything for his own family. He even
included the clothing he was wearing. He appeared in front of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e wearing a sack held together by thorns. When the Prophet asked him what
he had left for his family, he replied, Allah Y and His Messenger e are enough for
them. What can motivate a man to give in the path of Allah Y to this extreme except
love? Tirmidhi and Abu Daud records a hadith in the Sihah Collection (sihah sittah), also
narrated by ibn Asakir that when Allah Y saw this expression of love of Hazrath Abu
Bakr Siddique t, He ordered Jibraeel u, to wear a sack held together by thorns and to go
to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e and say, Allah Y has sent salutations (salaam) to Abu
Bakr via your Holy Personality and asks if he has at least left food at his home and if he
is pleased with Allah Y (hal anta ila Rabbika radhi). When Hazrath Abu Bakr Siddique t
heard this he went into a state of ecstasy, began whirling and began crying out repeatedly,
I am pleased with my Lord!
The Holy Prophet Muhammad e said as recorded in Bukhari and Muslim:
"Do not abuse my Companions, for if any of you were to spend gold equal to (mountain
of) Uhud in charity, it would not equal a handful of one of them or even half of that"
And he e said as recorded in Sahih, At-Tabaranee
"Whoever abuses my Companions, upon them is the curse of Allah Y, the angels and all
the people"
46[9] Haythami said in Majmua az-Zawahid (9:174) that he did not
know its narrators. Tabarani also narrated it in al-Mujam-al-Kabir
(3:41#2623)
47[10] Tabuk (also spelled Tabouk) (Arabic: )is a province of Saudi Arabia , located along the northwest coast of the country, facing Egypt across the Red Sea . The Holy Prophet Muhammad e decided to
lead a Muslim army into Roman territory before the Roman armies crossed the Arab borders and threatened
the heart of Islam. The Tabuk expedition took place in Rajab, 9 A.H.

Tirmidhi and Ibn Hibban quote Hazrath Abdullah ibn Mughaffal t that the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e warned:
By Allah Y , By Allah Y ! Refrain from using bad language about my Companions! By
Allah Y , By Allah Y ! Refrain from using bad language about my Companions! Do not
make them the target of your attacks after me! Whoever loves them, loves them on
account of his love of me; whoever hates them, hates them on account of his hatred of
me. He who insulted them, has insulted me, and he who insulted me, has insulted Allah Y,
he who insulted Allah Y, Allah Y will punish him
To love these companions, due to their love for the Holy Prophet e is a sign of love of the
Holy Prophet e. A lover loves everyone his beloved loves; loves everyone who are
faithful to his beloved and loves those that serve his beloved. Thus is forbidden to cut the
trees and hurt even the creatures in Madinah, the City of the Beloved. The family,
companions and associates of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e are worthy of love due to
their link (nisbah) with him. The food and other likes of the Holy Prophet e is worthy of
preference and love. Love makes a lover oblivious of everything other than the beloved
and attentive to everything loved by the beloved.
Tujhi koh dekhna, terihi sunna, tujh meh ghum hohna
haqiqat,ma'rifat, ahle tariqat is koh keh te heh
To look at beloved, to listen to his every word, to become engrossed in him
The adherents to Islamic Law (shariah) term such behaviour as Reality (haqiqat) and
Recognition (marifat)
Imam'Allamah Mahmud al- Alusi mentions in Tafsir Ruh al Maani48[11]:
After the Holy Prophet Muhammad e had passed away the Companions, used to go to the
House of his beloved wife Hazrath Maimuna y, to look at a mirror utilized by the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e that she had kept safely. In this mirror they did not see themselves
but the image of the Holy Prophet e.
The mirror had refused to let go of the image of the beloved.
Does intellect allow one to rub saliva on ones face? No! But the companions used to rub
the blessed saliva and wudhu water of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e on their faces,
collect his blessed hair, rub their faces and hands on objects that he e came into contact
with.
Mujhe hosh kab thi ruku kie, Mujhe kya khabar thi sujood kie, Tera naqshe pah kie talash
thi ke meh jukh raha tha namaaz meh
I had no knowledge of bowing (ruku). What did I know about prostration?
Was I in search of your footprints or was I prostrating in prayer?
Meri zindagi bi ajib heh, Meri bandagi bhi ajib heh, Jaha milgaya tera naqshe pah wahi
meh neh Kaaba bana diya
Strange is my life and my servitude
Wherever I found your footprints I made it my direction
It is ingrained in the nature of man that when he sees or hears from his beloved he loses
his senses and becomes ecstatic.
48[11] Ruh al-Ma'ani: The full name of this tafseer is 'Ruh al-Ma'ani fi
Tafseer al-Quran al-'Azim wa al-Sab al-Mathani' and it was written by
'Allamah Mahmud al-Alusi (died 1270 Hijrah), the famous scholar of
the last Period of Baghdad, and comprises of thirty volumes.

Let us see if this level of love existed in the Sahaba. The following is recorded in
Bukhari and Muslim49[12] and no scholar, Muhaddith, Aalim, Mufti, Muhaqqiq, can
refute its existence or reliability. It is also recorded in Tirmidhi and Abu Daud. The
Imams of Hadith have written commentaries on this Hadith. There were African
companions of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e from Ethiopia and/or Abyssinia, the Bani
Arfida (sons of Arfida) residents of Madinah that used to come to visit the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e annually on the occasion of Id. In Bukhari it is stated that they were
49[12] Al Jaami` Al Saheeh. Version 1.07 - By Imam Al Bukhari Volume
44.155:
Narrated `Aisha:
Allah's Apostle came to my house while two girls were singing beside
me the songs of Bu'ath (a story about the war between the two tribes
of the Ansar, i.e. Khazraj and Aus, before Islam.) The Prophet reclined
on the bed and turned his face to the other side. Abu Bakr came and
scolded me and said protestingly, "Instrument of Satan in the presence
of Allah's Apostle?" Allah's Apostle turned his face towards him and
said, "Leave them." When Abu Bakr became inattentive, I waved the
two girls to go away and they left. It was the day of `Id when the
Africans used to play with leather shields and spears. Either I
requested Allah's Apostle or he himself asked me whether I would like
to see the display. I replied in the affirmative. Then he let me stand
behind him and my cheek was touching his cheek and he was saying,
"Carry on, O Bani Arfida!" When I got tired, he asked me if that was
enough. I replied in the affirmative and he told me to leave.

Sahih Muslim recorded, Book 004, Number 1942.


'A'isha reported: The Messenger of Allah e came (in my apartment)
while there were two girls with me singing the song of the Battle of
Bu'ath. He lay down on the bed and turned away his face. Then came
Abu Bakr and he scolded me and said: Oh! this musical instrument of
the devil in the house of the Messenger of Allah e! The Messenger of
Allah e turned towards him and said: Leave them alone. And when he
(the Holy Prophet) became unattentive, I hinted them and they went
out, and it was the day of 'Id and Africans were playing with shields
and spears. (I do not remember) whether I asked the Messenger of
Allah e or whether he said to me if I desired to see (that sport). I said:
Yes. I stood behind him with his face parallel to my face, and he said:
O Banu Arfada, exert yourselves till I was satiated. He said (to me):

playing (yalhabu), dancing and playing in Masjid an-Nabawi, in front of the door of the
Holy Prophet e house. Bukhari has recorded this in the Chapter, Playing in the Masjid,
since the word playing appears in the text. So, readers of this Hadith concentrate more
on playing than other aspects. Other Imams have also commented on this hadith. This
being in the Chapter, Playing in the Masjid, in Bukhari, a question arises as to whether
anyone has permission to play in the mosque? This is a place of prayer, reflection,
bowing and prostration, so the answer is a definite, No! Yet, Bukhari has recorded this
in the Sub Chapter, Spearplay in the Masjid. The Muslims of African descent used to
come to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e on the Day of Id and it is stated they were
playing with spears in the Mosque and in front of the house door of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e. If one analyses this hadith and reflect as to where the door of the house of
the Holy Prophet Muhammad e opened, it opened leading to The Piece of Paradise on
Earth (Riazul Jannah). Imam Tirmidhi did not use the word playing (yalhaboon) but
utilized yaznifoon. Some have commentated on the activity saying that they were doing
the war dance since they had spears etc. Could they have not performed a war dance
outside in the open fields? They could never have played or performed a war dance at
such a Place of Sacredness , the Masjid of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e, in front of
the door of his blessed residence, standing on a piece of paradise.
Adab gahez zehre asmah az arsh nazuk tar ,
Nafas ghum kar dami ayaad Junaid oh Bayazid Jah
There is a place where respect has to be offered and that place is more delicate than the
arsh of God , When great spiritual luminaries from amongst his followers like Junaid
Baghdadi t and Byazid Bistami t, When they come to the Holy Prophet (Peace be upon
him, his family and his companions) in word or deed, they come trembling
So many have inferred and understood this hadith with their subjective limitations and
selective concentration. This hadith is in the Musnad of Imam Hamnbal, Tirmidhi,
Tabarani, Nasai and as-Sunan al-Kubra etc. Hazrath Aisha t, reported that the Abysinians
were standing in front of the door of the Holy Prophet es house and were ecstatically
dancing or performing raqs on anticipation of seeing the Holy Prophet Muhammad e.
Hazrath Anas bin Maalik t, reports in the Musnad of Imam Hamnbal t:
Kana fil Habashatu yazfiloona byna yada Rasulullahi e, wa yarbasu
Here yazfiloo or raqs is mentioned. The Holy Prophet e called Hazrath Aisha t, to
witness this ecstatic state of love, thus giving it his approval. Also, he asked the Sahaba
as to what they were saying in this ecstatic state? The Sahaba told the Holy Prophet e that
they were saying:
Muhammadun abdun saleh
Muhammad e is the most righteous slave of Allah Y

Is that enough? I said: Yes. Upon this he asked me to go.

This is in the same spirit as Hazrath Amir Khusro t saying:


Muhammad shame mehfil buud
Muhammad e is the light of the gathering
As the Holy Prophet Muhammad e put his benevolent gaze on the Sahaba performing
raqs and singing his praises, I have no doubt that he looks at us whirlingin raqs in
the Sama of the Chishtiyyah and Mawlawiyya 50[13] tarqas.
In Tabarani it is recorded that Hazrath Aisha y, said:
I had my hand on the Holy Prophet Muhammad e s shoulder whilst they, the Africans,
performed raqs
In another version of this hadith it is stated:
The Holy Prophet e invited his wife Aisha to watch the dance, took her into the crowd,
and lifted her over his back, so that she could watch them clearly as she eagerly leaned
forward, her cheek pressing against his.
In Sahih, ibn Hibban51[14] recording this incident the word yazfiloona meaning raks is
also used.
Only a dance to please the beloved, extreme love of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e is
permitted in the Masjid and no frivolous playing is allowed. Imam Abul-Fadl Ahmad ibn
Hajar, better known as Ibn Hajar al-Asqalani 52[15] t, says in his commentary of Bukhari,
Fath ul-Bari fi Sharh Sahih al-Bukhari or Fathul Bari or "Grant of the Creator" is the
most valued Sunni commentary of Sahih Bukhari, that this incident was repeated
annually on the Day of Id. In Tirmidhi and Nisai-Sunan al-Kubra it is mentioned that
the children of Madinah came to see what was happening and they joined in the dance of
the African Companions. Imam Zamakshari53[16] t, in Fraiz Dar-ilm Fariz says:
kala az-zakilu ar raqs
Imam Ibn Hajar al-Asqalani, Imam Suyuti and numerous Imams have described the
ecstasy and dance using the word raqs. In different versions of this Hadith it is stated
that Hazrath Umar ibn al-Khattab t felt compelled to interfere and stop them, but the Holy
50[13] Rumi, Jalal ad-Din, 120773, founded the Mawlawiyya (Mevlevi)
Sufi order, who use dancing and music as part of their spiritual
method, and who are known in the West as Whirling Dervishes. Rumi's
influence spread to Persian-speakers in Afghanistan and central Asia,
and beyond, to Turkey and India .
51[14] Ibn Hibban al-Busti, Muhammad (d. 354/965), Sahih ibn Hibban
52[15] Abul-Fadl Ahmad ibn Hajar, better known as Ibn Hajar alAsqalani (Arabic: ( ) February 18, 1372- d. February 2,
1449) Fath ul-Bari fi Sharh Sahih al-Bukhari or Fathul Bari or "Grant of
the Creator" is the most valued Sunni commentary of Sahih Bukhari,
written by Ibn Hajr Asqalani in 18 volumes
53[16] Abu al-Qasim Mahmud ibn Umar al-Zamakhshari (1074 - 1143 or
1075-1144) was a medieval Persian Hanafi scholar was born and died
in Khiva in Turkey

Prophet e intervened on their behalf, directing Umar to leave them alone and noting to
him that they were "the sons of Arfida," that is, not his (Arab) people. ." This event of the
"sons of Arfida"--a familiar Arabian linguistic reference to people of African descent-provides a significant instance of the place of culture (here, of course, Black African
culture) within the Prophetic dispensation. The Holy Prophet e's intervention to stop
Hazrath Umar t made it clear that the Africans were not to be judged by Hazrath Umar t's
local Arabian standards or made to conform to them. The "sons of Arfida" had their own
distinctive cultural tastes and traditional behaviour. The fact that they had embraced Islam
did not mean they were also required to commit cultural apostasy or become subservient
to Arab customs. The Prophet allowed Muslim Arabs agency in their social expression
and extended a similar right to non-Arabs. By his affirmation of the "sons of Arfida," he
established an overriding sunnah and abiding legal precedent for respecting different
ethnic and cultural traditions and acknowledging the emotional needs, tastes, and cultural
inclinations of all who embraced his teaching.
In keeping with this sunnah of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e, Khwaja Muinuddin
Chishti t of Ajmer, who is historically credited with pioneering the propagation of Islam
in the Indo-Pak sub-continent and had launched his missionary activity with the blessing
of the Holy Prophet e, had spiritually obtained the Holy Prophet es permission to utilize
sama54[17] with musical instruments as part of his mission. The people of India are
culturally attuned to instrumental music. This response to their cultural needs helped
Islam spread with ease.
Hazrath Jaafar bin Muhammad t reports55[18] that when Jaafar ibn Abi Talib t returned to
Madinah from Abyssinia, he was involved in a 'dispute' with his brother Hazrath Ali t and
Zaid bin Haritha t regarding who would take care of an orphan. They went to resolve the
case to the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. The Holy Prophet Muhammad e said to Zaid,
You are the friend (anta maula) of Allah Y and the Holy Prophet e. Turning to Jaafar t
he e said, You resemble me most in looks and character (anta ashbahta khalqi wa
54 [17] Sama: The "spiritual concert" or audition or listening. This term refers
specifically to the Sufi gatherings where music and song are employed as a means of
opening the heart to inrushes (warid) of knowledge and awareness. During the Sama'
the listener may experience ecstasy (wajd) and find Allah, the Real (al-haqq) within
that ecstasy. However, before true ecstasy can be experienced the listener must be
spiritually mature, having been prepared through discipline (riyada) and perpetual
Remembrance of Allah (zikrullah). Without this initial contraction (qabd) of spiritual
endevour the expansion (bast) of ecstasy will not be real. The sama is not suited for
the novice. True sama is a bird which flies from Allah to Allah. Allah is the singer and
Allah is the hearer. At this Divine Feast, the singer and the hearer become one.

55[18] A]Abu Abdullah Muhammad ibn Sa'd al-Baghdadi, Kitab atTabaqat (The book of The Major Classes) B] Shamsuddin Zahbi, C]
Ibn Hajar al-Asqalani, Fath ul-Bari fi Sharh Sahih al-Bukhari D] Ahmad
ibn Hanbal, Musnad, 1:108, #860 and many others

khuluqi), then turning to Hazrath Ali t, he e said, You are of me and I am of you (anta
minni wa ana minka). Thereafter the Holy Prophet e awarded the responsibility of the
maintenance and care of the orphan to Jaafar t. There is another report on the same
incident by Hazrath Ali t wherin he states that when the Holy Prophet Muhammad e
addressed Zayd t, he got up and began dancing ecstatically (raqs), then when the Holy
Prophet e addressed Hazrath Jaafar t and he danced ecstatically (raqs) around the
already ecstatic Zayd t. Then when he e addressed Hazrath Ali t he began dancing
ecstatically around both Hazrath Zayd t and Hazrath Jaafar t. Hazrath Jaafar t danced in a
particular way, hopping on one leg. When he was asked as to why he danced in that
peculiar fashion, he said that the Abyssinians dance in this way when they become really
excited happy56[19].
Imam Baihaqi57[20] t has a complete chapter in Sunan al-Kubra called the Chapter on the
permissibility of Raqs on the basis of this hadith. Imam Bazzar58[21] in al - musnad also
reports this hadith. Imam Jalaluddin Suyuti59[22] t on being questioned about the legality
of raqs and the fact that certain Sufis dance in an ecstatic state, has stated in Khasais alKubra that the Shariah has not forbidden raqs (La inkara alaihi fi zaalik). He further states
that this very question was asked to Shaykh al-Islam, Imam Imam Sirajuddin ibn AlMulaqqin t and he had given the same ruling.Imam Suyuti t then quoted the rulings of
many prominent scholars of the four schools of fiqh and concludes that none had
forbidden raqs but commended those that become ecstatic as people of a high spiritual
state (sahibe haal). He also quotes the Holy Quraan, the 3rd Sura, al-i-Imraan, verse 191
as evidence for the permissibility of raqs:

Men who celebrate the praises of Allah Y, standing, sitting, and lying down on their sides,
Throughout the Muslim world there are people who go into an ecstatic state and dance
due to their intense love for the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. The Sufis of the Shadhilyya
Order combine the postures of standing, sitting, and lying down in their gathering of zikr
called Hadra60[23] (Arabic:). He then quotes the hadith of Hazrath Jaafar ibn Abu
56[19]

Hazrath Jaafar t, had lived for ten years in Abyssinia .

57[20] Ahmad ibn Husayn Bayhaqi, also known as Imam Al-Bayhaqi


58[21] Abu `Amr al-Kindi al-Bazzar
59[22] Imam Al-Suyuti (c. 1445-1505 AD)
60[23] Hadra (Arabic: )is the term given to the collective supererogatory rituals performed by Sufi orders. The regular hadra is
most often held on Thursday evenings after night prayer, Fridays after Jum`a prayer, or Sunday evenings. The hadra features various
forms of dhikr (remembrance), including sermons, collective study, recitation of Qur'an and other texts (especially devotional texts
particular to the Sufi order (tariqa), called hizb and wird), religious poetic chanting, centering on praise and supplication to God,
religious exhortations, praise of the Holy Prophet e , and requests for intercession (inshad dini or madih - the latter term referring
literally to "praise") and rhythmic invocations of Allah, using one or more of His Names (especially "Allah", "Hayy", "Qayyum",
"Hu") or the testimony of faith and tawhid: "la ilaha illa Allah" (there is nothing worthy of worship but God). Rhythmic recitation of
names and chanting of religious poetry are frequently performed together. In conservative Sufi orders no instruments are used, or the
duff (frame drum) only; other orders employ a range of instrumentation. The term in Arabic literally means "presence". The collective

Taalib t, dancing ecstatically around the Holy Prophet Muhammad e. He then makes
reference to great Imams that performed raqs, like the great authory of Hadth and fiqh
such as Shaykhul-Islm `Izzuddn ibn `Abdis-Salm t "attended the sam` and danced in
states of ecstasy (wajd)!" (kna yahdurus-sam` wa yarqusu wa yatawajadu)! (Ibn al`Imd, Shadharatudh-dhahab, 5:302; Ibn Shkir al-Kutabi, Fawt al-wafyat, 1:595; alYfi`i, Mir't al-jinn, 4:154; al-Nabahni, Jmi` karamt al-awliy, 2:71; Abu al-Sa`dat,
Tj al-ma`rif, p. 250)
Imam Zahbi and Imam ibn Kathir61[24], the student of ibn Taymiyya, who is not counted
as the Imam of ahle Sunnah (translators note: since he was under the influence of ibn
Taimiyya) has written in al-Bidaayah wa al-Nihaayah about the brother-in-law of the
pride of the Muslims, the liberator of al-Quds, Sultan Salauddin Ayyubi, Shah Abu Saeed
al-Muzaffar as to how he celebrated Meelad on 12 Rabi ul-Awwal. He used to slaughter
5000 sheep, 10 000 chicken and thousands used to attend including Sufis. Imam ibn
Kathir writes:
Wa yafalu simaaanu lis Sufiyati min az-zuhri ilal fajr
He says that part of the meelad celebrations consisted of sama, which lasted from zuhr
salaah to the fajr salaah, with breaks for performance of salaah. He goes on to say that
Shah Abu Saeed al-Muzaffar used to ecstatically dance in raqs with the Sufis. Imam
Suyuti t then mentions another hadith on Hazrath Jaafar ibn Abu Taalib t. He says that
when Hazrath Jaafar ibn Abu Taalib t returned from Abyssinia and on seeing the Holy
Prophet Muhammad e after such a long absence began dancing ecstatically62[25]. In the
Sunan of ibn abu Daud63[26] and Asqalani in Fath al-Baari that when the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e arrived in Madinah after the Hijra then the Companions having Abyssinian
roots danced ecstatically in happiness. Imam Bukhari64[27] has narrated this in at-Tarikh
Sufi ritual is practiced under this name primarily in the Arab world, but also in some non-Arab Muslim countries such as Indonesia .

61[24] Ismail ibn Kathir (Arabic : ( ) 1373-1301) was an Islamic


scholar. His full name is Abu Al-Fida, 'Imad Ad-Din Isma'il bin 'Umar
bin Kathir Al-Qurashi Al-Busrawi. He was born in Busra , Syria (hence
Al-Busrawi).
62[25] Sulaiman bin Ahmad bin Ayub bin Mutair Al-Lakhmi At-Tabarani
[b260 AH] in Al-Mu'jam Al-Awsat
63[26] Abu Da'ud or Abu Dawod, full name Abu Da'ud Sulayman ibn
Ash`ath al-Azadi al-Sijistani, was a noted collector of hadith (sayings
of Muhammad), and wrote the third of the six canonical hadith
collections recognized by Sunni Muslims, Sunan Abi Da'ud. He was
born in Sijistan (Sistan or Sagestan , Persia ) in 817, and died in 888.
64[27] Muhammad ibn Ismail al-Bukhari (810-870) He traveled widely
throughout the Abbasid empire, collecting traditions. He is said to have
spent sixteen years writing down those traditions he thought
trustworthy.

al-Kabeer. Imam Nawawi65[28] and Imam Asqalani have stated that this was a welcoming
ecstatic dance (raqs) by the Abyssinians who by nature did this at joyous occasions for
they performed raqs on every occasion of Id. Imam Asqalani says that what can be a
bigger Day of Id for them than the coming of the Holy Prophet Muhammad e to
Madinah. He says the first raqs was performed by the Abyssinians on this day of arrival
and thereafter they continued this mode of expression of love for the Holy Prophet
Muhammad e on every Id day.
A man from Lahore came to shaykh Hasan Muhammad Chishti t66[29] and said: In this
time there is no one worthy of listening to Sufi music. He replied: If that was the case,
the world would be destroyed. The man said: In past days there were men like Shaykh
Baba Farid t, Shaykh Nizamuddin Awliya t and shaykh Nasiruddin t. Now there is no one
like them. The Chishti shaykh replied: In their time men said the very same thing.
from an urdu lecture by Prof. Tahirul Qadri
Adapted and translated By Irshad Soofie Siddiqui

Urs Rituals
By Hafez Fuzail Soofie
Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the 22nd Sura, al-Hajj,
in Verse 32:

And whoever holds in honour the Symbols of Allah, such (honour) should come truly
from piety of heart.
Most respected Mashaikh, Ulama, Elders my brothers and sisters in Islam, as-Salaamu
Alaikum wa Rahmatullahi wa barakatu. Alhamdulillah, with the grace of Almighty Allah
65[28] Abu Zakaria Mohiuddin Yahya Ibn Sharaf al-Nawawi (1233 - 1278) (Arabic:
), popularly known as al-Nawawi, an-Nawawi or Imam Nawawi (631 - 676 A.H. / 1255 - 1300 CE),
was a Sunni Muslim author on fiqh and hadith.[2] His position on legal matters is considered the
authoritative one in the Shafi'i Madhhab. He was born at Nawa near Damascus , Syria . As with many
Arabic and Semitic names, the last part of his name refers to his hometown.

66[29] A great Sufi Master of Gujarat from the lineage of Allama


Kamaluddeen t and was the nephew and Khalifa of Shaykh Jamaluddin
t. Khwaja Hassan Muhammad t was known as an alim of deep
knowledge and spirituality. He passed away in 982 AH

we are gathered here today to celebrate the Urs of his eminence Hazrath Shah Ghulam
Haafiz Soofie (may Allah be well pleased with him) and we will be observing the
symbolic ceremonial rites of the Urs such as the Procession (Juloos) Of Sundal and so
on, later on in the evening and I wish to base my talk this evening on those symbolic
ceremonial rites for those people who may be unaware of its significance and how we can
benefit there from, Insha-Allah.
Urs as we know is derived from a Hadith of the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Peace be
upon him, his family and his companions) where it is narrated in Mishkaat Shareef67[1]
that when the Waliullah, a Beloved Of Allah successfully answers three questions in the
grave then the angels (malaika) give him glad tidings of his success in this world and in
the hereafter stating, Sleep Like The Sleep Of A Bridegroom (nim ka naumatil aroos)
who is only going to be awakened by the Beloved, who is Allah, on the Day Of
Qiyaamah.
Khwaja Habib68[2] (may Allah be well pleased with him) expounding on this Hadith of
the Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him, his family and his companions) stated that you
have aroos, you have irs and you have urs. Aroos is the ain with a zabar or fatha on the
top is bridegroom. The irs, ain with a kasra, the zer at the bottom is the bride and urs with
the damma or pesh on the top is actually wedding or the wedding party (baraat). This is
where urs is derived from in brief and it is celebrated, to commemorate and to observe
the success which is enjoyed by the Waliullah in the sight of Almighty Allah. For the
lovers of Allah, the beloved ones of Allah and the devotees of the beloved ones of Allah it
is motivation to follow in the footsteps of the Waliullah so that they may also achieve
supreme success in the hereafter as well.
One of the most unique and most beautiful expressions of love, admiration and devotion
to a Waliullah, is expressed in what we will be celebrating, what we will be performing
after Salaatul Isha, which is known as The Procession Of Sandal (Juloose Sandal). Sundal
is literally speaking fragrance or scent (khushboo); and Procession of Chaadar (juloose
chaadar) that is literally the sheet covers (gilaaf). For very many of us, we may not even
know where the origins or what the origins of this juloose sandal may be. We may think
wrongfully that this is an innovation of some of over zealous devotees of the Beloved
Ones Of Allah, of the Aulia-Allah who created this ceremonial rite just to express their
love in this manner. It is not humanly created. It is not a human innovation it has been
started of by angels (malaika) themselves because mind you, if you didnt know AuliaAllah are loved by the Angels. Its odd whilst people in this world, some may love AuliaAllah and some may not love Aulia-Allah, in the heavens every angel loves the Waliullah
or the Beloved Ones Of Allah and they have been loving the Waliullah according to Sahih
Bukhari69[3] since the time when Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) declared, I love
so and so, and then Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) informed Jibraeel (may Allah
67[1] Tirmidhi Hadith No. 130 narrated by Abu Hurraira (may Allah be
well pleased with him) Alim Software; Also in Baihaqi
68[2] Khwaja Habib Ali Shah (may Allah be well pleased with him) the
Spiritual Guide of Hazrath Soofie Saheb (may Allah be well pleased
with him).

bless him with peace), that you also love so and so. Jibraeel, being the Arch- Angel
informs the other angels that, Allah loves this Waliullah, I therefore love this Waliullah
and all you angels must also love this Waliullah. So, they have loved the Waliullah ever
since Allah declared his love for the Waliullah. So great is their love for the Waliullah,
that according to another Hadith of the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Peace be upon him,
his family and his companions), to the inhabitants of the heavens, the angels, the home
and the place of worship (ibaadah) of the Waliullah is seen like we see stars in the sky. So
like we have stars in our sky, in the (view of the earth) sky of the angels, the status
(maqaam) the Place Of Worship (ibaadah) of a Waliullah, like e.g. Forty-Fifth Cutting,
the place of ibaadah of Hazrath Bhaijaan Soofie (may Allah be well pleased with him),
seems like a star, which is shining in the horizon. So you can imagine, what love the
angels must have for them, for when they see his place of ibaadah, they see it as we see a
shining star in the sky.
When the time of the physical demise of the Waliullah takes place and is about to take
place and the angels are informed that the one they loved for such a long period of time is
going to finally leave the earth and become an inhabitant of the heavens, then something
absolutely unique takes place. The Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him, his family and his
companions) says in a Hadith70[4] that is in Mishkaat Shareef from Musnad Imam
Hamnbal (may Allah be well pleased with him) has stated that when a Waliullah , a
mumin, a true believer, in the true sense of the word, the one who loves Allah, over
flowingly and profusely, and loves the Holy Prophet Muhammad (Peace be upon him, his
family and his companions) infinitely, so much so that he loves the Holy Prophet (Peace
be upon him, his family and his companions) more than himself and the rest of humanity
as well. When he is about to leave the world, then angels are informed of it, and when the
angels are informed that the person that we loved for such a long period of time is going
to be coming back to the heavens; then, do you know what happens? Angels descend
from the heavens, in large numbers. Allah knows how many and they descend in what we
may call a procession. A procession (juloos) from the heavens comes out to welcome that
Waliullah to the heavens. When this procession (juloos) leaves the heavens, they dont
come empty handed. According to the Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him, his family and
his companions) on the contrary, they come with The Funeral Shroud (kafan or chaadar)
from the The Funeral Shroud of paradise (min akfaan il-jannah). They come with
chaadar, they come with kafan from paradise and not only that, they also come with
fragrance, khushboo, scent, itr or sandal from paradise as well. So imagine the scenario,
as you will see later on that: whom are we imitating here. We are imitating the process
and methodology of welcoming, istiqbaal, congratulation and celebration of the angels
that they perform when a Waliullah is leaving this world. When they descend from the
heavens in a procession, they come down with kafan and fragrance from paradise. The
Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him, his family and his companions) described these angels
as being white in colour and their faces are more illuminated than the sun. After the
69[3] Hadith no 8:66 narrated by Abu Hurraira (may Allah be well
pleased with him), Alim Software.
70[4] Hadith narrated by Hazrath Baraa bin Aazib (may Allah be well
pleased with him) in Ahmad, Abu Dawood, Haakim, Bayhaqi and
others.

procession bearing chaadar and fragrance comes down, they come and sit in front of the
Waliullah who is about to leave this world. Like, e.g. you are sitting in front of me now.
The Hadith state that As Far As The Eye Can See (mad al basr or ta hadde nazar) is the
amount of angels seated there when the Waliullah is about to leave this world. Can you
imagine the crowd of angels at the time of wisaal of the Waliullah? At that moment The
Angel Of Death (malakal maut) Hazrath Israeel (may Allah bless him with peace) comes
and sits at the head side of the Waliullah and gives him glad tidings. He says, O Beloved
one of Allah, return to your Lord, in forgiveness and in the pleasure of Almighty Allah
(rida). This is the good news that is given That you are in the condition, that everything
has been forgiven and Allah is pleased with you. This is in accordance with the Holy
Qur'aan in the 89th Sura, al-Fajr, verses 27 and 28:

(To the righteous soul will be said:) "O (thou) soul, in (complete) rest and satisfaction!
"Come back thou to thy Lord, well pleased (thyself), and well-pleasing unto Him!
When he says this and is about to remove the soul (ruh), then the Holy Qur'aan again
describes the scene in the 56th Sura, al-Waqia: Verse 89:

(There is for him) Rest and Satisfaction, and a Garden of Delights


The Waliullah is given sweet smelling plants, flowers from The Garden Of Paradise,
which he inhales, and as he smells these fragrant flowers and plants, the Angel Of Death
removes his soul. The Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him, his family and his companions)
describes this removal of the soul. He says it is as if droplets of musk are coming out.
You know if you drop a bottle of attar and you see the droplets of musk oozing out. That
is the way the ruh of the Waliullah comes out.
Now, let me tell you the best part. The Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him, his family and
his companions) continues and he says, The Angel Of Death, has barely removed the
soul of the Waliullah, that so great is the eagerness and love, of the angels to at least get
into close proximity of the Waliullah, that before the Angel Of Death has removed the
soul, Angels literally in their eagerness, snatch away the soul from the Angel Of Death.
The Angel Of Death does not even get a chance for the Angels are literally clamoring
over one another just to get into contact with that pure soul that was a lover of Almighty
Allah. They literally snatch the soul away from the Angel Of Death. The Holy Prophet
(Peace be upon him, his family and his companions) has said that the angels snatch it
away so quickly, like before one can blink ones eye. They take the ruh and clothe that ruh
with the kafan that was brought from paradise. Thereafter they take the sandal, as we
know it or the fragrance and they place it on the ruh. I think it a very important note for
those who may disagree with placing chaadar on the graves of Waliullah. They object by
saying the grave is a piece of stone and not the body of the Waliullah. Here Angels give
one an answer to this objection. Does ruh have a material form? No it is A Subtle Entity

(jisme lateef). It is not physical in form, yet in spite of the fact, that we are lovers who act
senselessly, but the Angels are governed, they wrap the ruh in the kafan from paradise to
show the dignity of the Waliullah. Then once this takes place, and the kafan and itr is
placed on the ruh of the Waliullah something absolutely remarkable occurs.
Continuing with the Hadith: the Angels had brought fragrance from paradise but the ruh
itself emits so much of fragrance that it perfumes the space from the earth to the sky, with
the fragrance emitted from the soul of the Waliullah. Can you imagine? Let me inform
you. Hazrath Shah Muhammad Habeeb Soofie (may Allah be well pleased with him),
known as Hazrath Jande Pir, who is the younger brother of Hazrath Bhaijaan (may Allah
be well pleased with him), has written a poetic composition in honor of his brother,
describing this very scene of the ruh, fragrance and the fragrance from the ruh perfuming
the area from the earth to the sky. This fragrance from the ruh of the Waliullah actually
eclipses the fragrance of paradise. Why not? The fragrance that emits from the ruh of the
Waliullah is the fragrance of faith (imaan), recognition of Allah (irfaan) and love of the
Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him, his family and his companions). No fragrance can
compare to a fragrance emitted due to the love of the Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him,
his family and his companions). Hazrath Shah Muhammad Habeeb Soofie says referring
to this scene,
Muattar heh Aalam, yeh kis ki mahek heh
Azizoh, yeh jannat fiza ka heh sandal
Machi dhoom kaysi, zamin se sama tak
Heh gulzaar Aalam, nirala heh sandal
The angels ask the Angels that carry this soul through the stages of heaven, on the
different planes, who is this ruh? (maa haza ruhu tayyib). The question is not asked
out of not knowing but out of being flabbergasted. The angels carrying the ruh answer,
this is so and so, son of so and so. So again Hazrath Shah Muhammad Habeeb Soofie
says,
Uta kis tajammul se kis ka heh sandal
So he asks the question asked by the on looking angels, and he says that the Angels
carrying the soul say,
Yeh farzande Soofie piya ka heh sandal.
As the ruh is carried upwards by the Angels, the Hadith continues that they not only name
the person, but the Angels the sing the praises of the Waliullah. This is the salutations
upon the Holy Prophet or manqabat (poetry in praise of the Waliullah) that we read when
we conduct the sandal. We derive this practice from the Hadith, for it states that the
angels call him by the greatest titles conferred upon him during his earthly stay. The
angels continue singing his praises and addressing him by the best-earned titles until they
arrive at the first door of paradise. Here they seek permission to open the door. An
enquiry is made as to who has come and the parson is named. The Intimate Angels
(malaika e muqarrabun) open the door of paradise and on seeing the pure soul, ask for an
opportunity to carry it also. The Angels of the first heaven carry the soul to the second
heaven, and proceed with the procession (juloos) to all the levels till the seventh heaven.
Bear in mind that I am still continuing with the Hadith. When they reach the seventh
heaven, which is the highest heaven, they hear a voice from Almighty Allah saying, O
My servants, take the soul of my beloved friend, and his record of good deeds, recorded
in illiy yeen This illiy yeen is spoken of in the Holy Qur'aan in the 83rd Sura, alMutaffifeen: Verse 19,

And what will explain to thee what Illiyin is?


Allah continues in the next verse:
(There is) a Register (fully) inscribed,
It is a well-preserved record that I will call the honours list. The roll of honour that Allah
(Almighty and Glorious is He) has opened to record the names for His beloved ones and
the so-called graduates of the class. The wali has graduated so to speak on top of the
class. Do you know where illiyin is? This tablet is above the seven heavens and literally,
hanging from the arsh of Almighty Allah.
Due to time restraint, I need to address the other issues, but do you understand. The
journey of the ruh is not in earthly time, but in cosmic time. So a long period in earthly
time measurement is a short period in cosmic time. So all this takes place and Allah,
ensures that the ruh is returned to the body of the Waliullah. What happens here is the
connection (taalluq) remains. The ruh remains in illiyin and also it maintains a contact
with its body, wherever it is buried. So what we do in the sandal is actually the imitation
of the expression of love that the angels display, for the Aulia Allah. Congratulation to
those who have been partaking and performing the rite of sandal all these years.
Alhamdulillah, you have been performing the Sunnah of angels. Aulia Allah have taken it
one step foreword and they say not only are you performing the Sunnah of angels, but
insaan being khalifatullah fil ard must learn something from it as well. Aulia Allah teach
through symbolic instruction.
Samajh le ke heh ilm nukhte keh andar
Yeh raze khafi heh chupane keh kaabil
They teach through subtle instruction and hints. This entire procession (juloos) is a lesson
for every devotee of the Waliullah.
To go through this very quickly for I want to get to a very important point; when one
walks behind the sandal procession, then for every person desirous of reaching Allah, the
solemn motivation and intention must be, O Allah! As I walk behind this sandal
physically, spiritually and mentally I am making a commitment to follow in the footsteps
of your beloved Waliullah. In the manner he was a personification of Quraan and
Sunnah, I to desire to become a personification of Quraan and Sunnah so by following
him, I too might achieve success. You may have noticed the use of a awning or umbrella
(shamiana) whose practical use is to shelter one from natural elements like the rain and
sun, but the spiritual significance is that it is symbolic of the shade of Almighty Allah, for
it is stated that the two people who will be under the shade of Almighty Allah, on the day
of Qiyaamah will be those that loved one another for the sake of Allah. So if you love the
Waliullah and the Waliullah loves you then know and be rest assured, that on he day of
Qiyaamah, the day on which the Holy Prophet (Peace be upon him, his family and his
companions) said that there will be no shade except the shade of Allah, you will be under
the shade of Allah. The shamiana is the symbolic reminder of that aspect.

When you enter the mazaar and the chaadar is placed on the grave, then learn this lesson,
that as you put on external clothing, the Waliullah put on one more garb. The garbs that
we should all wear, the libaas at taqwa according to the Holy Qur'aan. You have to put on
the Clothing Of Taqwa and Allah consciousness, for that is the garb of the Waliullah. His
external garb was something else, but his internal had been fragranced with the Clothing
Of Taqwa (libaas at taqwa). You may have noticed people burn fragrant sticks in the
mazaar. This gives you three important lessons.
I go over it very quickly due to shortage of time.
1.
For a person who merely comes to the mazaar for dua, to ask through the means
(wasila) of the Waliullah, that Allah may accept his dua, the fragrant stick is giving you a
message, that no dua of yours will reach Allah, until and unless you do it with a burning
heart.
Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) says in the Holy Qur'aan, in the 27th Sura, an-Naml:
Verse 62;

Or, who listens to the (burning soul) distressed when it calls on Him, and who relieves its
suffering, besides Allah?
So for an ordinary visitor, take a lesson that until your heart is not burning and restless
your dua will not be effective.
For a Traveler On The Path To Allah (Saalik) the burning stick gives lessons that until
you are not prepared to endure pain, live and sacrifice for the benefit of other people, you
will not achieve success.
Tariqat bajuz khidmate khalq nehst
Ba tasbih o sajada o darq nehst
Tariqat is naught but service to creation
It is not a rosary, prayer mat and dress.
The third lesson is, that as you are present at The Station Of A Beloved One Of Allah
(maqaam) and seeing the fragrant stick burn, learn what is annihilation in Almighty
Allah (fana fillah). If you ask the fragrant stick as to what it symbolizes, it will tell you,
I am the heart of the lover of Almighty Allah, whose cold sigh reaches the heavens. And
when I sigh in the love of Allah, I perfume the entire surroundings. This is the lesson.
To conclude due to restricted time, keep this Hadith we discussed in mind as I relate an
occurrence in the life of Hazrath Bhaijaan (may Allah be well pleased with him). He
passed away on the day of Id al-Fitr. We know that on Id day we are required to put on
our best attire and celebrate Id, since it is a day of rejoicing. The Holy Prophet (Peace be
upon him, his family and his companions) has stated that for a fasting person there are
two glad tidings, one being breaking the fast and the second being the meeting with
Allah. Keeping this Hadith in mind let us look at the condition of Hazrath Bhaijaan (may
Allah be well pleased with him), who as wali of Allah had kept a perpetual fast of
abstained from filling his heart with anything but the love of Allah for the duration of his

life. Not a moment went by when their tongues are not wet with the zikr of Allah, or
their eye gazed at anything prohibited, or performed an action contrary to the will of
Allah. They kept this fast of the elite for the duration of their lives. This is the fast of
haqiqa. Their hearts had nothing except the love of Almighty Allah, and their eyes saw
nothing but Allah. I say, whilst the whole world celebrated Id, Hazrath Bhaijaan was
blessed with two Id at one time. He was blessed with the clothing of paradise before the
Day of Id could end. He has made a reference to his own demise in his poetic
composition, when he said
Eh mominoh heh Id ka kul jashn mubabarak
Khaliq ne hamme doh bara ye Id dikayi
Can you imagine his condition at the time of death. With angels descending with kafn and
fragrance of paradise. Allah (Almighty and Glorious is He) says in the Holy Qur'aan, in
the 89th Sura, al-Fajr: Verses 27 to 30:

(To the righteous soul will be said:) "O (thou) soul, in (complete) rest and satisfaction!
"Come back thou to thy Lord, well pleased (thyself), and well pleasing unto Him! "Enter
thou, then, among My Devotees! "Yea, enter thou My Heaven!"
First enter into the company of My Beloveds:
Marte dam lab par hoh Ya Soofie Piya!
Ayse rang se mere aaqa rang de
Here the Spiritual line of Awliya is there to welcome him. Then the Call To Prayer goes.
Aa gaye Kamil damme aakir woh jaane intezaar
Marne waale chen se mar, dek ab, ji bar ke dekh
Hazrath ibn Ata (may Allah be well pleased with him) has stated that, nafse mutmainna is
that nafs, that does not rest until it gets a Vision Of The Beloved. May Allah grant us the
way of love, for deeds without love is absolutely useless. For if one does not possess ishq
but has the converse which is disrespect, then according to the Holy Qur'aan, ones amaal
can be cancelled.
Lecture given By Hafez Fuzail Soofie on the occasion of the Urs in 2004.of Hazrath
Shah Ghulam Haafiz Soofie (may Allah be well pleased with him) .
Transcribed by Irshad Soofie, from a recording

Love all and hate none.


Mere talk of peace will avail you naught.
Mere talk of God and religion will not take you far.
Bring out all of the latent powers of your being
And reveal the full magnificence of your immortal self.
Be surcharged with peace and joy,
And scatter them wherever you are and wherever you go.
Be a blazing fire of truth,
Be a beauteous blossom of love and a soothing balm of peace.
With your spiritual light dispel the darkness of ignorance;
Dissolve the clouds of discord and war.
Spread the message of goodwill,
peace and harmony among the people.
Never seek any help,
charity or favours from anybody except God.
Never go to the courts of Kings,
But never refuse to bless and help the needy and the poor,
the widow and the orphan when they come to your door.
This is your mission, to serve the people...
Inspirer of my mind
Consoler of my heart
Healer of my spirit
Thy spirit lifteth me
from earth to heaven.
Thy words flow as the sacred river
Thy thought riseth as a divine spring
Thy tender feelings awaken sympathy in my heart
Beloved Teacher,
Thy very being is forgiveness.
The clouds of doubt and fear
are scattered by thy piercing glance
All ignorance vanishes in thy illuminating presence
A new hope is born in my heart

By breathing thy peaceful atmosphere.


O inspiring guide,
Through life's puzzling ways
In thee I feel abundance of blessings.

To call oneself a Muslim nominally and present oneself as a Muslim


formally does not make one a true Muslim. Just to know the
teachings of Islam does not help. A person who does not know
how to behave like a Muslim, although he or she knows the
Shariah, is like a "donkey carrying a load of books." (Sura
Jumu'ah.)Islam should make one Godly and not earth rooted. A
true Muslim seeks the pleasure of Allah and not the ego.
The adoption of the Shariah has degenerated with the
degeneration of Muslims. Sufi orders have also degenerated with
the adoption of rituals as an end and not a means to an end.In
most cases Sufism is viewed as ritualism through and through.The
spirit of the rituals are not explained hence the misconception of
attaching mystic significance to rituals, which were originally
formulated to mobilise the heart in the quest for Allah, has
replaced the "sulook" or journey toward Allah. The true
methodology (Tariqah) is not undertaken and the faraid
(compulsory requirements) is being neglected.
The love for Allah and Rasul (sallallahu alaihi wasallam) should
lead to love for all creation. A Sufi lives for Allah, and in a spiritual
sense with Allah and in Allah. To undertake the journey and propel
oneself to Allah, human beings possess two wings:The wing of Law
and the wing of Love. The Shariah is the (law) and the Tariqah is
(love).
To make the Shariah a cult is not what is demanded by Islam.
Islam is a revolt against the concept of cult. Islam is based on
Tawhid or Unity hence the law and love should be blended with
Hikmah (wisdom). If only one aspect is pursued it leads to
imbalance and religiously unbalanced personalities. The law leads
to academic pursuit or (Fikr) contemplation on the creation leading
to knowledge of the creator with the External eye and love leads to
Dhikr (remembrance of Allah) , which leads to recognition or
Ma'rifah of Allah. So Dhikr and Fikr take one to ones goal and the
goal is Allah. The love of Allah leads one to love those who loved
Allah ,who showed how to love Allah - to the Aulia.

Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wasallam) even the act of love is an


act of piety,because those who cannot love a person who loved Allah
cannot love Allah. It will be a hollow claim if they claim they love
Allah, but they don't love those who love Allah and showed the way
how to love Allah. The Aulia are the personification of love for Allah.
Electricity at the powerhouse is produced at a high voltage transformers established to bring down the voltage at each level reaches 220V allowed to go into the homes. For everything in the
universe there is only one powerhouse - the being of Allah - life, light
beauty and knowledge flows from here. This blessing must flow into
the universe so that everything functions and remains alive but the
Quran says that the radiator of this powerhouse is so infinitely
powerful - the indirect radiation of this made Moosa (alaihi salaam)
faint.
Therefore, it is established that nothing in this universe can bear the
impact therefore Allah out of his mercy created the first transformer the personality of the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wasallam). Nural-Muhammadi or the Light of Muhammed is the foundation of
creation which is the cosmic personality of the Holy Prophet
Muhammad (sallallahu alaihi wasallam). The cosmic personality is not
separated from the Historic Personality. Only the Prophet (sallallahu
alaihi wasallam) can bear the presence of Allah directly as was
observed in the Mi'raj.
There are certain unfortunate people who are so limited in their
perception that they are unable to understand this Transcendental
Dimension. Islamic cosmology says the first Transformer - heart of
the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wasallam) and there are other
transformers in the serial line - the hearts of all the Ambiya who
came and the hearts of all those who rose to the status of being
Awliya Allah. It is through these transformers that the blessing of
Allah flow into the dead universe and gives it light. We need to draw
inspiration from the personality of the Holy Prophet Muhammad
(sallallahu alaihi wasallam) and the true followers of the Holy Prophet
(sallallahu alaihi wasallam) and make it a means of blessing and
comfort for our hearts in these trying times.

The demonstration of love , for him who loves Allah and the Holy
Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wasallam) and who loved the mission of
the

KHWAJA NIZAMUDDIN AURANGABADI

This world of multiplicity has an adverse effect,


Whereas in reality my origin is unity;
These days the garden of my heart is slowly withering.
Salutations to you, O beauty of Aurang Chist,
O Nizamudeen! May my garden be refreshed.

Hazrat Shah Nizamudeen Aurangabadi (rahmatullahi alaihi) was a leading saint of southern India. As the khalifa-e-azam of Hazrat Shah
Kalimullah Jahanabaadi (rahmatullahi alaihi), the responsibility of propagating Islam, as well as the reformation of the Muslim
community at large fell onto his able shoulders. The Mughal empire, the light-bearer of civilisation in India for three centuries and more,
was on the wane, and political instability had created an all-time low in morale. In these trying times it was Hazrat Nizamudeen
(rahmatullahi alaihi) who became the torchbearer for a struggling society.
Khwaja Nizamudeen Aurangabadi (rahmatullahi alaihi)'s birth and early history are somewhat vague, though it is known that he was a
descendant of Hazrat Abu Bakr As-Siddiq (rahmatullahi alaihi), the first caliph of Islam. His birthplace is thought to be Kakor, India and
it was there that he received his early education. To further his studies he travelled to Delhi, the centre of learning at the time, and
sought out a university. Word of the popularity of Hazrat Shah Kalimullah Jahanabaadi (rahmatullahi alaihi) reached his ears, and he
decided to meet the great saint. When he arrived at the seminary of Shah Kalimullah (rahmatullahi alaihi), he found the door locked, as
the shaykh was engaged in the spiritual musical assembly of Sama, to which outsiders were not permitted. Unaware of this, he knocked
at the door and, to the amazement of the other disciples, was welcomed in by Shah Kalimullah (rahmatullahi alaihi) and shown great
love.
Soon after, he enrolled in the great saint's university. Initially, his primary aim was to obtain religious external knowledge only; but after
a time the intense spiritual atmosphere that surrounded Shah Kalimullah (rahmatullahi alaihi) drew him closer to the path of the sufis.
One day, as his shaykh prepared to leave, Hazrat Nizamudeen (rahmatullahi alaihi) came forward, dusted his murshid's shoes, and
placed them before him. Upon seeing this, Shah Kalimullah (rahmatullahi alaihi) inquired,
"O Nizamudeen, have you come to acquire knowledge, or do you seek the path to Allah?" To this Hazrat Nizamudeen (rahmatullahi
alaihi) humbly replied,
"You know better what is for me;
You know better, for us, for me."
Upon hearing these lines, Shah Kalimullah (rahmatullahi alaihi) recalled the prophecy of Hazrat Yahya Madini (rahmatullahi alaihi) who
stated that the one who would utter these words would be responsible for the spread and propagation of the Chishtia silsila. Hazrat
Nizamudeen (rahmatullahi alaihi)'s spiritual instruction began immediately.
After a period of strict spiritual training, Hazrat Nizamudeen (rahmatullahi alaihi) was made the khalifa-e-azam of Shah Kalimullah
(rahmatullahi alaihi) and instructed to spread Islam and serve the needs of the community in south India. He travelled extensively
throughout the whole of the southern Indian plateau teaching and catering for the needs of the community, before settling down and
establishing a seminary in Aurangabad. The seminary had ten doors, and none were forbidden entrance or education. At each door
stood a scribe, and whenever anyone came with financial problems, they would write the following lines,
"The remembrance of Allah is the greatest;
On this my heart is fully concentrated.
To this world, Nizamudeen is oblivious."
The poor would then take this to the rich who, because of their great respect and deep love for the great saint, would regard it as the
highest honour to fulfill their brother's needs. Wit this kind of practice, is it any wonder that the sufis of India were loved and venerated
by rich and poor alike? Those who spread Islam not only by words but by actions, who not only preach but live the eternal principles of
Islam, such men and women have truly sacrificed their lives for Allah. It is they to whom Rasulallah refers in a hadith wherein he states,
"The saint are like prophets unto their communities."
Hazrat Nizamudeen Aurangabadi (rahmatullahi alaihi) was actively involved in the propagation of Islam, and along with this he gave
special attention to the spiritual training of his mureeds. Historians have quoted the number of those disciples as being over one
hundred thousand. At any given time after salaat, about 300-500 people would gather in his mosque for zikrullah. Hazrat Nizamudeen
(rahmatullahi alaihi) was strict in his observance of the sunnah of the Holy Prophet (sallallahu alaihi wasallam) . His concern for the
welfare of the community, as we have seen above, was sincere and very great. He would always ensure that in whatever way possible
he would fulfil the need of anyone who Shah Kalimullah (rahmatullahi alaihi) him for assistance. The life of a saint is not only miracles
and ecstasies; they live in the real world of ordinary mortals such as ourselves, but yet transcend it, for they breathe Allah's love with
every breath.
Hazrat Nizamudeen (rahmatullahi alaihi)'s book, Nizamul Quloob,
hold very pertinent lessons for us today, as it stresses the spiritual
upliftment of the muslims prior to them commencing propagation
of Islam. He states that in order to be a true representative of
Islam, one necessarily must possess those qualities of spiritual
perfection that would allow the person to spread the religion not
only by word but also by practice and principle. Hazrat
Nizamudeen (rahmatullahi alaihi) had thirteen khulafah who

continued his work after his demise, foremost of whom was his
son Hazrat Moulana Fakhrudeen (rahmatullahi alaihi). He left this
world on the 12th Zil Qadah 1142AH and lies buried in his mazaar
in Aurangabad. Ample testimony to his great services to Islam
both during his life and posthumously can be found in the title
afforded to him, "Qutbe Daccan", or "axis around which revolves
the south."

The beloved sleeps, covering her face with the beautiful locks of her hair.
Khusro, go home! The darkness of evening has engulfed the whole world.

XXX

You might also like